A DISCOURSE TOUCHING THE LAW AND
GRACE;
THE NATURE OF THE ONE, AND THE NATURE OF THE OTHER; SHOWING WHAT THEY ARE, AS THEY ARE THE TWO COVENANTS; AND LIKEWISE, WHO THEY BE, AND WHAT THEIR CONDITIONS ARE, THAT BE UNDER EITHER OF THESE TWO COVENANTS:
Wherein, for the better
understanding of the reader, there are several questions
answered touching the law and grace, very easy to be read, and
as easy to be understood, by those that are the sons of wisdom,
the children of the second covenant.
"For the law made nothing perfect, but the bringing in of a better hope did; by the which we draw nigh unto God" (Heb 7:19).
"Therefore we conclude that a man is justified by faith without the deeds of the law" (Rom 3:28).
"To him [therefore] that worketh not, but believeth on Him that justifieth the ungodly, his faith is counted for righteousness" (Rom 4:5).
by
John Bunyan
THE EPISTLE TO THE READER
READER,
If at any time there be held forth by the
preacher the freeness and fullness of the Gospel, together with the
readiness of the Lord of Peace to receive those that have any desire
thereto, presently it is the spirit of the world to cry out, Sure
this man disdains the law, slights the law, and counts that of none
effect; and all because there is not, together with the Gospel,
mingled the doctrine of the law, which is not a right dispensing of
the Word according to truth and knowledge. Again; if there be the
terror, horror, and severity of the law discovered to a people by
the servants of Jesus Christ, though they do not speak of it to the
end people should trust to it, by relying on it as it is a covenant
of works; but rather that they should be driven further from that
covenant, even to embrace the tenders and privileges of the second,
yet, poor souls, because they are unacquainted with the natures of
these two covenants, or either of them, therefore, "they say," "Here
is nothing but preaching of the law, thundering of the law"; when,
alas, if these two be not held forth-to wit, the Covenant of Works
and the Covenant of Grace, together with the nature of the one and
the nature of the other-souls will never be able either to know what
they are by nature or what they lie under. Also, neither can they
understand what grace is, nor how to come from under the law to meet
God in and through that other most glorious covenant, through which
and only through which, God can communicate of Himself grace, glory,
yea, even all the good things of another world.
I, having considered these things, together
with others, have made bold to present yet once more to thy view, my
friend, something of the mind of God, to the end, if it shall be but
blessed to thee, thou mayest be benefited thereby; for verily these
things are not such as are ordinary and of small concernment, but do
absolutely concern thee to know, and that experimentally too, if
ever thou do partake of the glory of God through Jesus Christ, and
so escape the terror and insupportable vengeance that will otherwise
come upon thee through His justice, because of thy living and dying
in thy transgressions against the Law of God. And therefore, while
thou livest here below, it is thy duty, if thou wish thyself happy
for the time to come, to give up thyself to the studying of these
two covenants treated of in the ensuing discourse; and so to study
them until thou, through grace, do not only get the notion of the
one and of the other in thy head, but until thou do feel the very
power, life, and glory of the one and of the other: for take this
for granted, he that is dark as touching the scope, intent, and
nature of the law, is also dark as to the scope, nature, and glory
of the Gospel; and also he that hath but a notion of the one, will
barely have any more than a notion of the other.
And the reason is this: because so long as
people are ignorant of the nature of the law, and of their being
under it-that is, under the curse and condemning power of it, by
reason of their sin against it-so long they will be careless, and
negligent as to the inquiring after the true knowledge of the
Gospel. Before the commandment came-that is, in the spirituality of
it-Paul was alive-that is, thought himself safe; which is clear,
(Rom 7:9,10 compared with Phil 3:5-11, etc). But when that came, and
was indeed discovered unto him by the Spirit of the Lord, then Paul
dies (Rom 7) to all his former life (Phil 3) and that man which
before could content himself to live, though ignorant of the Gospel,
cries out now, "I count all things but loss for the excellency of
the knowledge of Christ Jesus my Lord" (verse 8). Therefore, I say,
so long they will be ignorant of the nature of the Gospel, and how
glorious a thing it is to be found within the bounds of it; for we
use to say, that man that knoweth not himself to be sick, that man
will not look out for himself a physician; and this Christ knew full
well when He saith, "The whole have no need of the physician, but
the sick";1 that is, none will in truth desire the physician unless
they know they be sick. That man also that hath got but a notion of
the law-a notion, that is, the knowledge of it in the head, so as to
discourse and talk of it-if he hath not felt the power of it, and
that effectually too, it is to be feared will at the best be but a
notionist in the Gospel; he will not have the experimental knowledge
of the same in his heart; nay, he will not seek nor heartily desire
after it; and all because, as I said before, he hath not experience
of the wounding, cutting, killing nature of the other.
I say, therefore, if thou wouldst know the
authority and power of the Gospel, labour first to know the power
and authority of the law; for I am verily persuaded that the want of
this one thing-namely, the knowledge of the law, is one cause why so
many are ignorant of the other. That man that doth know the law doth
not know in deed and in truth that he is a sinner; and that man that
doth not know he is a sinner, doth not know savingly that there is a
Saviour.
Again; that man that doth not know the nature
of the law, that man doth not know the nature of sin; and that man
that knoweth not the nature of sin, will not regard to know the
nature of a Saviour; this is proved (John 8:31-36). These people
were professors, and yet did not know the truth-the Gospel; and the
reason was, because they did not know themselves, and so not the
law. I would not have thee mistake me, Christian reader; I do not
say that the law of itself will lead any soul to Jesus Christ; but
the soul being killed by the law, through the operation of its
severity seizing on the soul, then the man, if he be enlightened by
the Spirit of Christ to see where remedy is to be had, will not,
through grace, be contented without the real and saving knowledge
through faith of Him.
If thou wouldst, then, wash thy face clean,
first take a glass and see where it is dirty; that is, if thou
wouldst indeed have thy sins washed away by the blood of Christ,
labour first to see them in the glass of the law, and do not be
afraid to see thy besmeared condition, but look on every spot thou
hast; for he that looks on the foulness of his face by the halves,
will wash by the halves; even so, he that looks on his sins by the
halves, he will seek for Christ by the halves. Reckon thyself,
therefore, I say, the biggest sinner in the world, and be persuaded
that there is none worse than thyself; then let the guilt of it
seize on thy heart, then also go in that case and condition to Jesus
Christ, and plunge thyself into His merits and the virtue of His
blood; and after that, thou shalt speak of the things of the law and
of the Gospel experimentally, and the very language of the children
of God shall feelingly drop from thy lips, and not till then (James
1).
Let this therefore learn thee thus much: he
that hath not seen his lost condition hath not seen a safe
condition; he that did never see himself in the devil's snare, did
never see himself in Christ's bosom. "This my Son was dead, and is
alive again: he was lost, and is found." "Among whom we also had our
conversation in time past." 2 "But now are (so many of us as
believe) returned unto" Jesus Christ, "the" chief "Shepherd and
Bishop of your souls."
I say, therefore, if thou do find in this
treatise, in the first place, something touching the nature, end,
and extent of the law, do not thou cry out, therefore, all of a
sudden, saying, "Here is nothing but the terror, horror, and
thundering sentences of the law."
Again; if thou do find in the second part of
this discourse something of the freeness and fullness of the Gospel,
do not thou say neither, "Here is nothing but grace, therefore,
surely, an undervaluing of the law." No; but read it quite through,
and so consider of it; and I hope thou shalt find the two
covenants-which all men are under, either the one or the
other-discovered, and held forth in their natures, ends, bounds,
together with the state and condition of them that are under the
one, and of them that are under the other.
There be some that through ignorance do say
how that such men as preach terror and amazement to sinners are
beside the book, and are ministers of the letter-the law, and not of
the Spirit-the Gospel; but I would answer them, citing them to the
Sixteenth of Luke, from the nineteenth verse to the end; and (1 Cor
6:9,10; Gal 3:10; Rom 3:9-19) only this caution I would give by the
way, how that they which preach terror to drive souls to the
obtaining of salvation by the works of the law, that preaching is
not the right Gospel preaching; yet when saints speak of the sad
state that man are in by nature, to discover to souls their need of
the Gospel, this is honest preaching, and he that doth do so, he
doth the work of a Gospel minister (Rom 3:9-25).
Again, there are others that say, because we
do preach the free, full, and exceeding grace discovered in the
Gospel, therefore we make void the law; when indeed, unless the
Gospel be held forth in the glory thereof without confusion, by
mingling the Covenant of Works therewith, the law cannot be
established. "Do we then make void the law through faith," or
preaching of the Gospel; nay, stay, saith Paul, "God forbid: yea, we
establish the law" (Rom 3:31).
And verily, he that will indeed establish the
law, or set it in its own place, for so I understand the words, must
be sure to hold forth the Gospel in its right colour and nature; for
if a man be ignorant of the nature of the Gospel and the Covenant of
Grace, they, or he, will be very apt to remove the law out of its
place, and that because they are ignorant, not knowing "what they
say, nor whereof they affirm."
And let me tell you, if a man be ignorant of
the Covenant of Grace, and the bounds and boundlessness of the
Gospel, though he speak and make mention of the name of the Father,
and of the Son, and also of the name of the new covenant, and the
blood of Christ, yet at this very time, and in these very words, he
will preach nothing but the law, and that as a Covenant of Works.
Reader, I must confess it is a wonderfully
mysterious thing, and he had need have a wiser spirit than his own
that can rightly set these two covenants in their right places, that
when he speaks of the one he doth not jostle the other out of its
place. O, to be so well enlightened as to speak of the one-that is,
the law-for to magnify the Gospel; and also to speak of the Gospel
so as to establish, and yet not to idolize, the law, nor any
particular thereof! It is rare, and to be heard and found but in
very few men's breasts.
If thou shouldst say, What is it to speak to
each of these two covenants so as to set them in their right places,
and also to use the terror of the one so as to magnify and advance
the glory of the other? To this I shall answer also, read the
ensuing discourse, but with an understanding heart, and it is like
thou wilt find a reply therein to the same purpose, which may be to
thy satisfaction.
Reader, if thou do find this book empty of
fantastical expressions, and without light, vain, whimsical,
scholar-like terms, thou must understand it is because I never went
to school to Aristotle, or Plato, but was brought up at my father's
house, in a very mean condition, among a company of poor countrymen.
But if thou do find a parcel of plain, yet sound, true, and home
sayings, attribute that to the Lord Jesus His gifts and abilities,
which He hath bestowed upon such a poor creature as I am and have
been. And if thou, being a seeing Christian, dost find me coming
short, though rightly touching at some things, attribute that either
to my brevity, or, if thou wilt, to my weaknesses, for I am full of
them. A word or two more, and so I shall have done with this.
First. And the first is, Friend, if thou do
not desire the salvation of thy soul, yet I pray thee to read this
book over with serious consideration; it may be it will stir up in
thee some desires to look out after it, which at present thou mayest
be without.
Secondly, If thou dost find any stirrings in
thy heart by thy reading such an unworthy man's works as mine are,
be sure that in the first place thou give glory to God, and give way
to thy convictions, and be not too hasty in getting them off from
thy conscience; but let them so work till thou dost see thyself by
nature void of all graces, as faith, hope, knowledge of God, Christ,
and the Covenant of Grace.
Thirdly, Then, in the next place, fly in all
haste to Jesus Christ, thou being sensible of thy lost condition
without Him, secretly persuading of thy soul that Jesus Christ
standeth open-armed to receive thee, to wash away thy sins, to
clothe thee with His righteousness, and is willing, yea, heartily
willing, to present thee before the presence of the glory of God and
among the innumerable company of angels with exceeding joy. This
being thus, in the next place, do not satisfy thyself with these
secret and first persuasions, which do or may encourage thee to come
to Jesus Christ; but be restless till thou dost find by blessed
experience the glorious glory of this the second covenant extended
unto thee, and sealed upon thy soul with the very Spirit of the Lord
Jesus Christ. And that thou mayest not slight this my counsel, I
beseech thee, in the second place, consider these following things-
First, If thou dost get off thy convictions,
and not the right way (which is by seeing thy sins washed away by
the blood of Jesus Christ), it is a question whether ever God will
knock at thy heart again or no; but rather say, such an one "is
joined to idols, let him alone" (Hosea 4:17). Though he be in a
natural state, "let him alone." Though he be in or under the curse
of the law, "let him alone." Though he be in the very hand of the
devil, "let him alone." Though he be a-going post-haste to Hell,
"let him alone." Though his damnation will not only be damnation for
sins against the law, but also for slighting the Gospel, yet "let
him alone." My Spirit, My ministers, My Word, My grace, My mercy, My
love, My pity, My common providences, shall no more strive with him;
"let him alone." O sad! O miserable! who would slight convictions
that are on their souls, which (if not slighted) tend so much for
their good?
Secondly, If thou shalt not regard how thou
do put off convictions, but put them off without the precious blood
of Christ being savingly applied to thy soul, thou art sure to have
the mis-spending of that conviction to prove the hardening of thy
heart against the next time thou art to hear the Word preached or
read. This is commonly seen, that those souls that have not regarded
those convictions that are at first set upon their spirits, do
commonly, and that by the just judgments of God upon them, grow more
hard, more senseless, more seared and sottish in their spirits; for
some, who formerly would quake and weep, and relent under the
hearing of the Word, do now for the present sit so senseless, so
seared, and hardened in their consciences, that certainly if they
should have hell-fire thrown in their faces, as it sometimes cried
up in their ears, they would scarce be moved; and this comes upon
them as a just judgment of God (2 Thess 2:11,12).
Thirdly, If thou do slight these, or those
convictions that may be set upon thy heart by reading of this
discourse, or hearing of any other good man preach the Word of God
sincerely, thou wilt have the stifling of these or those convictions
to account and answer for at the day of judgment; not only thy sins,
that are commonly committed by thee in thy calling and common
discourse, but thou shalt be called to a reckoning for slighting
convictions, disregarding of convictions, which God useth as a
special means to make poor sinners see their lost condition and the
need of a Saviour. Now here I might add many more considerations
besides these, to the end thou mayest be willing to tend and listen
to convictions; as,
First, Consider thou hast a precious soul,
more worth than the whole world; and this is commonly worked upon,
if ever it be saved, by convictions.
Secondly, This soul is for certain to go to
Hell, if thou shalt be a slighter of convictions.
Thirdly, If that go to Hell, thy body must go
thither too, and then never to come out again. "Now consider this,
ye that" are apt to "forget God," and His convictions, "lest He tear
you in pieces, and there be none to deliver" (Psa 50:22).
But if thou shalt be such an one that shall,
notwithstanding thy reading of thy misery, and also of God's mercy,
shall persist to go on in thy sins, know, in the first place, that
here thou shalt be left, by the things that thou readest, without
excuse; and in the world to come thy damnation will be exceedingly
aggravated for thy not regarding of them, and turning from thy sins,
which were not only reproved by them, but also for rejecting of that
Word of Grace that did instruct thee how and which way thou shouldst
be saved from them. And so farewell; I shall leave thee, and also
this discourse, to God, who I know will pass a righteous judgment
both upon that and thee. I am yours, though not to serve your lusts
and filthy minds, yet to reprove, instruct, and, according to that
proportion of faith and knowledge which God hath given me, to
declare unto you the way of life and salvation. Your judgings,
railings, surmisings, and disdaining of me, that I shall leave till
the fiery judgment comes, in which the offender shall not go
unpunished, be he you or me; yet I shall pray for you, wish well to
you, and do you what good I can. And that I might not write or speak
in vain, Christian, pray for me to our God with much earnestness,
fervency, and frequently, in all your knockings at our Father's
door, because I do very much stand in need thereof; for my work is
great, my heart is vile, the devil lieth at watch, the world would
fain be saying, "Aha, aha, thus we would have it"; and of myself,
keep myself I cannot; trust myself I dare not; if God do not help
me, I am sure it will not be long before my heart deceive me, and
the world would have their advantage of me, and so God be
dishonoured by me, and thou also ashamed to own me. O, therefore, be
much in prayer for me, thy fellow! I trust, in that glorious grace
that is conveyed from Heaven to sinners, by which they are not only
sanctified here in this world, but shall be glorified in that which
is to come; unto which, the Lord of His mercy bring us all.
John Bunyan.
These are several titles which are set over
the several TRUTHS contained in this book, for thy sooner finding of
them-
THE FIRST PART
1. The
words of the text opened, and the doctrines laid down. [This
doctrine, that there are some that are under the law, or under the
Covenant of Works.] 2. What
the Covenant of Works is, and when it is given. 3. What
it is to be under the Covenant of Works. 4. Who
they are that are under the Covenant of Works. 5. What
men may attain to that are under this Covenant of Works.
THE SECOND PART
1. The
doctrine proved. 2. The
new covenant made with Christ. 3. The
conditions of the new covenant. 4. The
suretiship of Christ. 5. Christ
the Messenger of the new covenant. 6. Christ
the Sacrifice of the new covenant. 7. Christ
the High Priest of the new covenant. 8. Christ
completely fulfilled the conditions of the new covenant. 9. The
Covenant of Grace unchangeable; the opposers answered. 10. Who,
and how men are actually brought into the new covenant. 11. A
word of experience. 12. The
privileges of the new covenant. 13. Two
Hell-bred objections answered. 14. A
use of examination about the old covenant. 15. A
legal spirit. 16. The
use of the new covenant. 17. The
unpardonable sin. 18. Objections
answered for their comfort who would have their part in the new
covenant.
THE DOCTRINE OF THE LAW AND GRACE UNFOLDED;
OR,
A DISCOVERY OF THE LAW AND GRACE; THE
NATURE OF THE ONE, AND THE NATURE OF THE OTHER, AS THEY ARE THE TWO
COVENANTS, ETC.
[THE WORDS OF THE TEXT OPENED, AND THE DOCTRINES LAID DOWN.]
"FOR YE ARE NOT UNDER THE LAW, BUT UNDER GRACE" (Rom 6:14).
In the three former chapters, the Apostle is
pleading for the salvation of sinners by grace without the works of
the law, to the end he might confirm the saints, and also that he
might win over all those that did oppose the truth of this doctrine,
or else leave them the more without excuse; and that he might so do,
he taketh in hand, first, to show the state of all men naturally, or
as they come into the world by generation, saying, in the Third
Chapter, "There is none righteous, no, not one; there is none that
understandeth; there is none that doeth good," etc. As if he had
said, It seems there is a generation of men that think to be saved
by the righteousness of the law; but let me tell them that they are
much deceived, in that they have already sinned against the law; for
by the disobedience of one, many, yea all, were brought into a state
of condemnation (Rom 5:12-20). Now, in the Sixth Chapter he doth, as
if he had turned him round to the brethren, and said, My brethren,
you see now that it is clear and evident that it is freely by the
grace of Christ that we do inherit eternal life. And again, for your
comfort, my brethren, let me tell you that your condition is
wondrous safe, in that you are under grace; for, saith he, "Sin
shall not have dominion over you"; that is, neither the damning
power, neither the filthy power, so as to destroy your souls: "For
ye are not under the law"; that is, you are not under that that will
damn you for sin; "but" you are "under grace," or stand thus in
relation to God, that though you have sinned, yet you shall be
pardoned. "For ye are not under the law, but under grace." If any
should ask what is the meaning of the word "under," I answer, it
signifieth, you are not held, kept, or shut up by it so as to appear
before God under that administration, and none but that; or thus,
you are not now bound by the authority of the law to fulfill it and
obey it, so as to have no salvation without you so do; or thus, if
you transgress against any one tittle of it, you by the power of it
must be condemned. No, no, for you are not so under it; that is, not
thus under the law. Again, "For ye are not under the law." What is
meant by this word "law"? The word "law," in Scripture, may be taken
more ways than one, as might be largely cleared. There is the law of
faith, the law of sin, the law of men, the law of works, otherwise
called the Covenant of Works, or the first or old covenant. "In that
He saith a new covenant," which is the grace of God, or commonly
called the Covenant of Grace, "He hath made the first old," that is,
the Covenant of Works, or the law (Heb 8:13). I say, therefore, the
word "law" and the word "grace," in this Sixth of the Romans, do
hold forth the two covenants which all men are under; that is,
either the one or the other. "For ye are not under the law"-that is,
you to whom I do now write these words, who are and have been
effectually brought into the faith of Jesus, you are not under the
law, or under the Covenant of Works. He doth not, therefore, apply
these words to all, but to some, when he saith, "But ye"; mark, ye,
ye believers, ye converted persons, ye saints, ye that have been
born. (YE) "for ye are not under the law," implying others are that
are in their natural state, that have not been brought in to the
Covenant of Grace by faith in Jesus Christ.
The words, therefore, being thus understood,
there is discovered these two truths in them-DOCTRINE FIRST. That
there are some in Gospel times that are under the Covenant of Works.
DOCTRINE SECOND. That there is never a believer under the law, as it
is the Covenant of Works, but under grace through Christ. "For ye,"
you believers, you converted persons, ye "are not under the law but
under grace"; or, for you are delivered and brought into or under
the Covenant of Grace.
DOCTRINE FIRST.
For the first, THAT THERE ARE SOME THAT ARE
UNDER THE LAW, OR UNDER THE COVENANT OF WORKS, see, I pray you, that
Scripture in the Third of the Romans, where the Apostle, speaking
before of sins against the law, and of the denunciations thereof
against those that are in that condition, he saith, "What things
soever the law saith, it saith to them who are under the law"; mark,
"it saith to them who are under the law, that every mouth may be
stopped, and all the world become guilty before God" (Rom 3:19).
That is, all those that are under the law as a Covenant of Works,
that are yet in their sins, and unconverted, as I told you before.
Again he saith, "But if ye be led by the Spirit, ye are not under
the law" (Gal 5:18). Implying again, that those which are for
sinning against the law, or the works of the law, either as it is
the old covenant, these are under the law, and not under the
Covenant of Grace. Again he saith, "For as many as are of the works
of the law are under the curse" (Gal 3:10). That is, they that are
under the law are under the curse; for mark, they that are under the
Covenant of Grace are not under the curse. Now, there are but two
covenants, therefore, it must needs be that they that are under the
curse are under the law, seeing those that are under the other
covenant are not under the curse, but under the blessing. "So, then,
they which be of faith are blessed with faithful Abraham," but the
rest are under the law (Gal 3:9).
Now I shall proceed to what I do intend to
speak unto. FIRST. I shall show you what the Covenant of Works, or
the law, is, and when it was first given, together with the nature
of it. SECOND. I shall show you what it is to be under the law, or
Covenant of Works, and the miserable state of all those that are
under it. THIRD. I shall show you who they are that are under this
covenant, or law. FOURTH. I shall show you how far a man may go and
yet be under this covenant, or law.
[WHAT THE COVENANT OF WORKS IS, AND WHEN IT WAS GIVEN.]
FIRST. What this Covenant of Works is, and when it was given.
[What this covenant is.] The Covenant of
Works or the law, here spoken of, is the law delivered upon Mount
Sinai to Moses, in two tables of stone, in ten particular branches
or heads; for this see Galatians 4. The Apostle, speaking there of
the law, and of some also that through delusions of false doctrine
were brought again, as it were, under it, or at least were leaning
that way (verse 21) he saith, As for you that desire to be under the
law, I will show you the mystery of Abraham's two sons, which he had
by Hagar and Sarah; these two do signify the two covenants; the one
named Hagar signifies Mount Sinai, where the law was delivered to
Moses on two tables of stone (Exo 24:12; 34:1; Deu 10:1). Which is
that, that whosoever is under, he is destitute of, and altogether
without the grace of Christ in his heart at the present. "For I
testify again to every man," saith he, speaking to the same people,
that "Christ has become of no effect unto you, whosoever of you are
justified by the law," namely, that given on Mount Sinai-"ye are
fallen from grace" (Gal 5:3,4). That is, not that any can be
justified by the law; but this meaning is, that all those that seek
justification by the works of the law, they are not such as seek to
be under the second covenant, the Covenant of Grace. Also the
Apostle, speaking again of these two covenants, saith, "But if the
ministration of death," or the law, for it is all one, "written and
engraven in stones," mark that, "was glorious, how shall not the
ministration of the Spirit," or the Covenant of Grace, "be rather
glorious?" (2 Cor 3:7,8). As if he had said, It is true, there was a
glory in the Covenant of Works, and a very great excellency did
appear in it-namely, in that given in the stones on Sinai-yet there
is another covenant, the Covenant of Grace, that doth exceed it for
comfort and glory.
[When it was given.] But, though this law was
delivered to Moses from the hands of angels in two tables of stones,
on Mount Sinai, yet this was not the first appearing of this law to
man; but even this in substance, though possibly not so openly, was
given to the first man, Adam, in the Garden of Eden, in these words:
"And the LORD God commanded the man, saying, Of every tree of the
garden thou mayest freely eat: but of the tree of the knowledge of
good and evil, thou shalt not eat of it; for in the day that thou
eatest thereof thou shalt surely die" (Gen 2:16,17). Which
commandment then given to Adam did contain in it a forbidding to do
any of those things that was and is accounted evil, although at that
time it did not appear so plainly, in so many particular heads, as
it did when it was again delivered on Mount Sinai; but yet the very
same. And that I shall prove thus-
God commanded Adam in Paradise to abstain
from all evil against the first covenant, and not from some sins
only; but if God had not commanded Adam to abstain from the sins
spoken against in the Ten Commandments, He had not commanded to
abstain from all, but from some; therefore it must needs be that He
then commanded to abstain from all sins forbidden in the law given
on Mount Sinai. Now that God commanded to abstain from all evil or
sin against any of the Ten Commandments, when He gave Adam the
command in the garden, it is evident that He did punish the sins
that were committed against those commands that were then delivered
on Mount Sinai, before they were delivered on Mount Sinai, which
will appear as followeth-
The First, Second, and Third Commandments
were broken by Pharaoh and his men; for they had false gods which
the Lord executed judgment against (Exo 12:12); and blasphemed their
true God (Exo 5:2) which escaped not punishment (Exo 7:17-25). For
their gods could neither deliver themselves nor their people from
the hand of God; but "in the thing wherein they dealt proudly, He
was above them" (Exo 18:11).
Again; some judge that the Lord punished the
sin against the Second Commandment, which Jacob was in some measure
guilty of in not purging his house from false gods, with the
defiling of his daughter Dinah (Gen 34:2).
Again; we find that Abimelech thought the sin
against the Third Commandment so great, that he required no other
security of Abraham against the fear of mischief that might be done
to him by Abraham, his son, and his son's son, but only Abraham's
oath (Gen 21:23). The like we see between Abimelech and Isaac (Gen
31:53). The like we find in Moses and the Israelites, who durst not
leave the bones of Joseph in Egypt, because of the oath of the Lord,
whose name, by so doing, would have been abused (Exo 13:19).
And we find the Lord rebuking His people for
the breach of the Fourth Commandment (Exo 16:27-29).
And for the breach of the Fifth, the curse
came upon Ham (Gen 9:25-27). And Ishmael dishonouring his father in
mocking Isaac was cast out, as we read (Gen 21:9,10). The
sons-in-law of Lot for slighting their father perish in the
overthrow of Sodom (Gen 19:14).
The Sixth Commandment was broken by Cain, and
so dreadful a curse and punishment came upon him that it made him
cry out, "My punishment is greater than I can bear" (Gen 4:13).
Again; when Esau threatened to slay his
brother, Rebecca sent him away, saying, "Why should I be deprived
also of you both in one day?" hinting unto us, that she knew murder
was to be punished with death (Gen 27:45) which the Lord Himself
declared likewise to Noah (Gen 9:6).3 Again; a notable example of
the Lord's justice in punishing murder we see in the Egyptians and
Pharaoh, who drowned the Israelites' children in the river (Exo
1:22); and they themselves were drowned in the sea (Exo 14:27).
The sin against the Seventh Commandment was
punished in the Sodomites, etc., with the utter destruction of their
city and themselves (Gen 19:24,25). Yea, they suffer "the vengeance
of eternal fire" (Jude 7). Also the male Shechemites, for the sin
committed by Hamor's son, were all put to the sword (Gen 34:25,26).
Our first parents sinned against the Eighth
Commandment in taking the forbidden fruit, and so brought the curse
on themselves and their posterity (Gen 3:16). Again; the punishment
due to the breach of this Commandment was by Jacob accounted death
(Gen 31:30,32). And also by Jacob's sons (Gen 44:9,10).
Cain sinning against the Ninth Commandment as
in Genesis 4:9, was therefore cursed as to the earth (Verse 11). And
Abraham, though the friend of God, was blamed for false-witness by
Pharaoh, and sent out of Egypt (Gen 12:18-20) and both he and Sarah
reproved by Abimelech (Gen 20:9,10,16).
Pharaoh sinned against the Tenth Commandment,
and was therefore plagued with great plagues (Gen 12:15,17).
Abimelech coveted Abraham's wife, and the Lord threatened death to
him and his, except he restored her again; yea, though he had not
come near her, yet for coveting and taking her the Lord fast closed
up the wombs of his house (Gen 20:3,18).
[Further Arguments.] I could have spoken more
fully to this, but that I would not be too tedious, but speak what I
have to say with as much brevity as I can. But before I pass it, I
will besides this give you an argument or two more for the further
clearing of this, that the substance of the law delivered on Mount
Sinai was, before that, delivered by the Lord to man in the garden.
As, first, "death reigned over them that had not sinned after the
similitude of Adam's transgression"-that is, though they did not
take the forbidden fruit as Adam did; but had the transgression been
no other, or had their sin been laid to the charge of none but those
that did eat of that fruit, then those that were born to Adam after
he was shut out of the garden had not had sin, in that they did not
actually eat of that fruit, and so had not been slaves to death;
but, in that death did reign from Adam to Moses, of from the time of
his transgression against the first giving of the law, till the time
the law was given on Mount Sinai, it is evident that the substance
of the Ten Commandments was given to Adam and his posterity under
that command, "Eat not of the tree that is in the midst of the
garden." But yet, if any shall say that it was because of the sin of
their father that death reigned over them, to that I shall answer,
that although original sin be laid to the charge of his posterity,
yet it is also for their sins that they actually committed that they
were plagued. And again, saith the Apostle, "For where no law is,
there is no transgression" (Rom 4:15). For "sin is not imputed when
there is no law; nevertheless death reigned from Adam to Moses."
saith he (Rom 5:13,14). But if there had been no law, then there had
been no transgression, and so no death to follow after as the wages
thereof; for death is the wages of sin (Rom 6:23) and sin is the
breach of the law; an actual breach in our particular persons, as
well as an actual breach in our public person (1 John 3:4). 4
Again; there are no other sins than those
against that law given on Sinai, for the which those sins before
mentioned were punished; therefore the law given before by the Lord
to Adam and his posterity is the same with that afterwards given on
Mount Sinai. Again; the conditions of that on Sinai and of that in
the garden are all one; the one saying, "Do this and live," the
other saying the same. Also judgment denounced against men in both
kinds alike; therefore this law it appeareth to be the very same
that was given on Mount Sinai.
Again; the Apostle speaketh but of two
covenants-to wit, grace and works-under which two covenants all are;
some under one, and some under the other. Now this to Adam is one,
therefore that on Sinai is one, and all one with this; and that this
is a truth, I say, I know, because the sins against that on Sinai
were punished by God for the breech thereof before it was given
there; so it doth plainly appear to be a truth; for it would be
unrighteous with God for to punish for that law that was not broken;
therefore it was all one with that on Sinai.
Now the law given on Sinai was for the more
clear discovery of those sins that were before committed against it;
for though the very substance of the Ten Commandments were given in
the garden before they were received from Sinai, yet they lay so
darkly in the heart of man, that his sins were not so clearly
discovered as afterwards they were; therefore, saith the Apostle,
the law was added (Gal 3:19). Or, more plainly, given on Sinai, on
tables of stone, "that the offence might abound,"- that is, that it
might the more clearly be made manifest and appear (Rom 5:20).
Again; we have a notable resemblance of this
at Sinai, even in giving the law; for, first, the law was given
twice on Sinai, to signify that indeed the substance of it was given
before. And, secondly, the first tables that were given on Sinai
were broken at the foot of the mount, and the others were preserved
whole, to signify that though it was the true law that was given
before, with that given on Sinai, yet it was not so easy to be read
and to be taken notice of, in that the stones were not whole, but
broken, and so the law written thereon somewhat defaced and
disfigured.
[Object.] But if any object and say, though
the sins against the one be the sins against the other, and so in
that they do agree, yet it doth not appear that the same is
therefore the same Covenant of Works with the other.
Answ. That which was given to Adam in
Paradise you will grant was the Covenant of Works; for it runs thus:
Do this and live; do it not and die; nay, "Thou shalt surely die."
Now there is but one Covenant of Works. If therefore I prove that
that which was delivered on Mount Sinai is the Covenant of Works,
then all will be put out of doubt. Now that this is so it is
evident-
1. Consider the two covenants are thus called
in Scripture, the one the administration of death, and the other the
administration of life; the one the Covenant of Works, the other of
grace; but that delivered on Sinai is called the ministration of
death; that, therefore, is the Covenant of Works. "But if," saith
he, "the ministration of death, written and engraven on stones was
glorious," (2 Cor 3:7).
2. The Apostle, writing to the Galatians,
doth labour to beat them off from trusting in the Covenant of Works;
but when he comes to give a discovery of that law or covenant-he
labouring to take them off from trusting in it-he doth plainly tell
them it is that which was given on Sinai (Gal 4:24,25). Therefore
that which was delivered in two tables of stone on Mount Sinai, is
the very same thing that was given before to Adam in Paradise, they
running both alike; that in the garden saying, Do this and live; but
in the day thou eatest thereof-or dost not do this-thou shalt surely
die.
And so is this on Sinai, as is evident when
he saith, "the man which doeth those things shall live by them" (Rom
10:5). And in case they break them, even any of them, it saith,
"Cursed is every one that continueth not in all things which are
written in the (whole) book of the law to do them" (Gal 3:10). Now
this being thus cleared, I shall proceed.
[WHAT IT IS TO BE UNDER THE COVENANT OF WORKS.]
SECOND. A second thing to be spoken to is
this: to show what it is to be under the law as it is a Covenant of
Works; to which I shall speak, and that thus-
To be under the law as it is a Covenant of
Works, is to be bound, upon pain of eternal damnation, to fulfill,
and that completely and continually, every particular point of the
Ten Commandments, by doing them-Do this, and then thou shalt live;
otherwise, "cursed is every one that continueth not in all," in
every particular thing or "things which are written in the book for
the law to do them" (Gal 3:10). That man that is under the first
covenant stands thus, and only thus, as he is under that covenant,
or law. Poor souls, through ignorance of the nature of that Covenant
of Works, the law that they are under, they do not think their state
to be half so bad as it is; when, alas! there is none in the world
in such a sad condition again besides themselves; for, indeed, they
do not understand these things. He that is under the law, as it is a
Covenant of Works, is like the man that is bound by the law of his
king, upon pain of banishment, or of being hanged, drawn, and
quartered, not to transgress any of the commandments of the king; so
here, they that are under the Covenant of Works, they are bound,
upon pain of eternal banishment and condemnation, to keep within the
compass of the law of the God of Heaven. The Covenant of Works may,
in this case, be compared to the laws of the Medes and Persians,
which being once made, cannot be altered. Daniel 6:8. You find that
when there was a law made and given forth that none should ask a
petition of any, God or man, but of the king only; this law being
established by the king (verse 9). Daniel breaking of it, let all do
whatever they can, Daniel must go into the lions' den (verse 16). So
here, I say, there being a law given, and sealed with the Truth and
the Word of God,-how that "the soul that sinneth, it shall die" (Eze
18:4). Whosoever doth abide under this covenant, and dieth under the
same, they must and shall go into the lion's den; yea, worse than
that, for they shall be thrown into Hell, to the very devils.
But to speak in a few particulars for thy
better understanding herein, know,
First. That the Law of God, or Covenant of
Works, doth not contain itself in one particular branch of the law,
but doth extend itself into many, even into all the Ten
Commandments, and those ten into very many more, as might be showed;
so that the danger doth not lie in the breaking of one or two of
these ten only, but it doth lie even in the transgression of any one
of them. As you know, if a king should give forth ten particular
commands to be obeyed by his subjects upon pain of death; now if any
man doth transgress against any one of these ten, he doth commit
treason, as if he had broke them all, and lieth liable to have the
sentence of the law as certainly passed on him as if he had broken
every particular of them.
Second. Again; you know that the laws being
given forth by the king, which if a man keep and obey for a long
time, yet if at the last he slips and breaks those laws, he is
presently apprehended, and condemned by that law. These things are
clear as touching the Law of God, as it is a Covenant of Works. If a
man doth fulfill nine of the Commandments, and yet breaketh but one,
that being broken will as surely destroy him and shut him out from
the joys of Heaven as if he had actually transgressed against them
all; for indeed, in effect, so he hath. There is a notable Scripture
for this in the Epistle of James, Second Chapter, at the tenth
verse, that runs thus:-"For whosoever shall keep the whole law, and
yet offend in one point, he is guilty of all,"-that is, he hath in
effect broken them all, and shall have the voice of them all cry out
against him. And it must needs be so, saith James, because "He that
said," or that law which said, "Do not commit adultery, said also,
Do not kill. Now, if thou commit no adultery, yet if thou kill, thou
art become a transgressor of the law" (Verse 11). As thus; it may be
thou didst never make to thyself a god of stone or wood, or at least
not to worship them so greatly and so openly as the heathen do, yet
if thou hast stolen, born false witness, or lusted after a woman in
thy heart (Matt 5:28) thou hast transgressed the law, and must for
certain, living and dying under that covenant, perish for ever by
the law; for the law hath resolved on that before-hand, saying,
"Cursed is every one that continueth not in ALL things"; mark, I
pray you, "in all things"; that is the Word, and that seals the
doctrine.
Third. Again; though a man doth not covet,
steal, murder, worship gods of wood and stone, etc., yet if he do
take the Lord's name in vain, he is for ever gone, living and dying
under that covenant. "Thou shalt not take the name of the LORD thy
God in vain"; there is the command. But how if we do? Then he saith,
"the LORD will not hold him guiltless that taketh His name in vain."
No; though thou live as holy as ever thou canst, and walk as
circumspectly as ever any did, yet if thou dost take the Lord's name
in vain, thou art gone by that covenant: "For I will not," mark "I
will not," let him be in never so much danger, "I will not hold him
guiltless that taketh My name in vain" (Exo 20:7). And so likewise
for any other of the ten, do but break them, and thy state is
irrecoverable, if thou live and die under that covenant.
Fourth. Though thou shouldest fulfill this
covenant, or law, even all of it, for a long time, ten, twenty,
forty, fifty, or threescore years, yet if thou do chance to slip and
break one of them but once before thou die, thou art also gone and
lost by that covenant; for mark, "Cursed is every one that
continueth not in all things," that continueth not in ALL things,
mark that, "which are written in the book of the law to do them."
But if a man doth keep all the Law of God his whole lifetime, and
only sin one time before he dies, that one sin is a breach of the
law, and he hath not continued in doing the things contained
therein. For, so to continue, according to the sense of this
Scripture, is to hold on without any failing, either in thought,
word, or deed; therefore, I say, though a man doth walk up to the
law all his lifetime, but only at the very last sin one time before
he die, he is sure to perish for ever, dying under that covenant.
For, my friends, you must understand that the Law of God is "yea,"
as well as the Gospel; and as they that are under the Covenant of
Grace shall surely be saved by it, so, even so, they that are under
the Covenant of Works and the law, they shall surely be damned by
it, if continuing there. This is the Covenant of Works and the
nature of it-namely, not to abate anything, no, not a mite, to him
that lives and dies under it: "I tell thee," saith Christ, "thou
shalt not depart thence," that is, from under the curse, "till thou
hast paid the very last mite" (Luke 12:59).
Fifth. Again; you must consider that this law
doth not only condemn words and actions, as I said before, but it
hath authority to condemn the most secret thoughts of the heart,
being evil; so that if thou do not speak any word that is evil, as
swearing, lying, jesting, dissembling, or any other word that
tendeth to, or savoureth of sin, yet if there should chance to pass
but one vain thought through thy heart but once in all thy lifetime,
the law taketh hold of it, accuseth, and also will condemn thee for
it. You may see one instance for all in (Matt 5:27,28) where Christ
saith, that though a man doth not lie with a woman carnally, yet if
he doth but look on her, and in his heart lust after her, he is
counted by the law, being rightly expounded, such an one that hath
committed the sin, and thereby hath laid himself under the
condemnation of the law. And so likewise of all the rest of the
commands; if there be any thought that is evil do but pass through
thy heart, whether it be against God or against man in the least
measure, though possibly not discerned of thee, or by thee, yet the
law takes hold of thee therefore, and doth by its authority, both
cast, condemn, and execute thee for thy so doing. "The thought of
foolishness is sin" (Prov 24:9).
Sixth. Again; the law is of that nature and
severity, that it doth not only inquire into the generality of thy
life as touching several things, whether thou art upright there or
no; but the law doth also follow thee into all thy holy duties, and
watcheth over thee there, to see whether thou dost do all things
aright there-that is to say, whether when thou dost pray thy heart
hath no wandering thoughts in it; whether thou do every holy duty
thou doest perfectly without the least mixture of sin; and if it do
find thee to slip, or in the least measure to fail in any holy duty
that thou dost perform, the law taketh hold on that, and findeth
fault with that, so as to render all the holy duties that ever thou
didst unavailable because of that. I say, if, when thou art a
hearing, there is but one vain thought, or in praying, but one vain
thought, or in any other thing whatsoever, let it be civil or
spiritual, one vain thought once in all thy lifetime will cause the
law to take such hold on it, that for that one thing it doth even
set open all the floodgates of God's wrath against thee, and
irrecoverably by that covenant it doth bring eternal vengeance upon
thee; so that, I say, look which ways thou wilt, and fail wherein
thou wilt, and do it as seldom as ever thou canst, either in civil
or spiritual things, as aforesaid-that is, either in the service of
God, or in thy employments in the world, as thy trade or calling,
either in buying or selling any way, in anything whatsoever; I say,
if in any particular it find thee tardy, or in the least measure
guilty, it calleth thee an offender, it accuseth thee to God, it
puts a stop to all the promises thereof that are joined to the law,
and leaves thee there as a cursed transgressor against God, and a
destroyer of thy own soul. 5
Here I would have thee, by the way, for to
take notice, that it is not my intent at this time to enlarge on the
several commands in particular-for that would be very tedious both
for me to write and thee to read; only thus much I would have thee
to do at the reading hereof-make a pause, and sit still one quarter
of an hour, and muse a little in thy mind thus with thyself, and
say, Did I ever break the law; yea or no? Had I ever, in all my
lifetime, one sinful thought passed through my heart since I was
born; yea or no? And if thou findest thyself guilty, as I am sure
thou canst not otherwise choose but do, unless thou shut thy eyes
against thy every day's practice, then, I say, conclude thyself
guilty of the breach of the first covenant. And when that this is
done, be sure, in the next place, thou do not straightway forget it
and put it out of thy mind, that thou art condemned by the same
covenant; and then do not content thyself until thou do find that
God hath sent thee a pardon from Heaven through the merits of our
Lord Jesus Christ, the mediator of the second covenant. And if God
shall but give thee a heart to take this my counsel, I do make no
question but these words spoken by me, will prove an instrument for
the directing of thy heart to the right remedy for the salvation of
thy soul.
Thus much now touching the law, and the
severity of it upon the person that is found under it, having
offended or broken any particular of it, either in thought, word, or
action; and now, before I do proceed to the next thing, I shall
answer four objections that do lie in my way, and also, such as do
stumble most part of the world.
[Four Objections.]
Object. First. But you will say, Methinks you
speak very harsh; it is enough to daunt a body. Set the case,
therefore, that a man, after he hath sinned and broken the law,
repenteth of his wickedness and promiseth to do so no more, will not
God have mercy then, and save a poor sinner then?
Answ. I told you before, that the covenant,
once broken, will execute upon the offender that which it doth
threaten to lay upon him; and as for your supposing that your
repenting and promising to do so no more may help well, and put you
in a condition to attain the mercy of God by the law, these thoughts
do flow from gross ignorance both of the nature of sin, and also of
the nature of the justice of God. And if I were to give you a
description of one in a lost condition for the present, I would
brand him out with such a mark of ignorance as this is.
Answ. 2. [The first answer is expounded by
the second]. The law, as it is a Covenant of Works, doth not allow
of any repentance unto life to those that live and die under it; for
the law being once broken by thee, never speaks good unto thee,
neither doth God at all regard thee, if thou be under that covenant,
notwithstanding all thy repenting and also promises to do so no
more. No, saith the law, thou hast sinned, therefore I must curse
thee; for it is My nature to curse, even, and nothing else but
curse, every one that doth in any point transgress against Me (Gal
3:10). They brake My covenant "and I regarded them not, saith the
Lord" (Heb 8:9). Let them cry, I will not regard them; let them
repent, I will not regard them; they have broken My covenant, and
done that in which I delighted not; therefore, by that covenant I do
curse, and not bless; damn, and not save; frown, and not smile;
reject, and not embrace; charge sin and not forgive it. They brake
My covenant "and I regarded them not"; so that I say, if thou break
the law, the first covenant, and thou being found there, God looking
on thee through that, He hath no regard on thee, no pity for thee,
no delight in thee.
Object. Second. But hath not the law promises
as well as threatenings? saying, "The man which doeth these things
shall live," mark, he shall live, "by them," or in them (Rom 10:5;
Gal 3:12).
Answ. 1. To break the Commandments is not to
keep or fulfill the same; but thou hast broken them, therefore the
promise doth not belong to thee by that covenant. 2. The promises
that are of the law are conditional, and so not performed unless
there be a full and continual obedience to every particular of it,
and that without the least sin. "Do this"-mark, do this-and
afterwards thou shalt live; but if thou break one point of it once
in all thy life, thou hast not done the law; therefore the promises
following the law do not belong unto thee if one sin hath been
committed by thee. As thus, I will give you a plain instance-"Set
the case, there be a law made by the king, that if any man speak a
word against him he must be put to death, and this must not be
revoked, but must for certain be executed on the offender; though
there be a promise made to them that do not speak a word against
him, that they should have great love from him; yet this promise is
nothing to the offender; he is like to have no share in it, or to be
ever the better for it; but contrariwise, the law that he hath
offended must be executed on him; for his sin shutteth him out from
a share of, or in, the promises." So it is here, there is a promise
made indeed, but to whom? Why, it is to none but those that live
without sinning against the law; but if thou, I say, sin one time
against it in all thy lifetime, thou art gone, and not one promise
belongs to thee if thou continue under this covenant. Methinks the
prisoners at the bar, having offended the law, and the charge of a
just judge towards them, do much hold forth the law, as it is a
Covenant of Works, and how it deals with them that are under it. The
prisoner having offended, cries out for mercy; Good, my lord, mercy,
saith he, pray, my lord, pity me. The judge saith, What canst thou
say for thyself that sentence of death should not be passed upon
thee? Why, nothing but this, I pray my lord be merciful. But he
answers again, Friend, the law must take place, the law must not be
broken. The prisoner saith, Good, my lord, spare me, and I will
never do so any more. The judge, notwithstanding the man's outcries
and sad condition, must, according to the tenor of the law, pass
judgment upon him, and the sentence of condemnation must be read to
the prisoner, though it makes him fall down dead to hear it, if he
executes the law as he ought to do. And just thus it is concerning
the Law of God.
Object. Third. Ay, but sometimes, for all
your haste, the judge doth also give some pardons, and forgives some
offenders, notwithstanding their offences, though he be a judge.
Answ. It is not because the law is merciful,
but because there is manifested the love of the judge, not the love
of the law. I beseech you to mark this distinction; for if a man
that hath deserved death by the law be, notwithstanding this,
forgiven his offence, it is not because the law saith, "spare him";
but it is the love of the judge or chief magistrate that doth set
the man free from the condemnation of the law. But mark; here the
law of men and the Law of God do differ; the law of man is not so
irrevocable; but if the Supreme please he may sometimes grant a
pardon without satisfaction given for the offence; but the Law of
God is of this nature, that if a man be found under it, and a
transgressor, or one that hath transgressed against it, before that
prisoner can be released there must be a full and complete
satisfaction given to it, either by the man's own life or by the
blood of some other man; for "without shedding of blood is no
remission" (Heb 9:22); that is, there is no deliverance from under
the curse of the Law of God; and therefore, however the law of man
may be made of none effect sometimes by showing mercy without giving
of a full satisfaction, yet the Law of God cannot be so contented,
nor at the least give way, that the person offending that should
escape the curse and not be damned, except some one do give a full
and complete satisfaction to it for him, and bring the prisoner into
another covenant-to wit, the Covenant of Grace, which is more easy,
and soul-refreshing, and sin-pardoning.
I say, therefore, you must understand that if
there be a law made that reaches the life, to take it away for the
offence given by the offender against it, then it is clear that if
the man be spared and saved, it is not the law that doth give the
man this advantage, but it is the mere mercy of the king, either
because he hath a ransom or satisfaction some other way, or being
provoked thereto out of his own love to the person whom he saveth.
Now, thou also having transgressed and broken the Law of God, if the
law be not executed upon thee, it is not because the law is
merciful, or can pass by the least offence done by thee, but thy
deliverance comes another way; therefore, I say, however it be by
the laws of men where they be corrupted and perverted, yet the Law
of God is of that nature, that if it hath not thy own blood or the
blood of some other man-for it calls for no less, for to ransom thee
from the curse of it, being due to thee for thy transgression, and
to satisfy the cries, the doleful cries, thereof, and ever for to
present thee pure and spotless before God, notwithstanding this
fiery law-thou art gone if thou hadst a thousand souls; for "without
shedding of blood there is no remission" (Heb 9:22); no forgiveness
of the least sin against the law.
Object. Fourth. But, you will say, "I do not
only repent me of my former life, and also promise to do so no more,
but now I do labour to be righteous, and to live a holy life; and
now, instead of being a breaker of the law, I do labour to fulfill
the same. What say you to that?"
Answ. Set the case, thou couldst walk like an
angel of God; set the case, thou couldst fulfill the whole law, and
live from this day to thy life's end without sinning in thought,
word, or deed, which is impossible; but, I say, set the case it
should be so, why, thy state is as bad, if thou be under the first
covenant, as ever it was. For, first, I know thou darest not say but
thou hast at one time or other sinned; and if so, then the law hath
condemned thee; and if so, then I am sure that thou, with all thy
actions and works of righteousness, canst not remove the dreadful
and irresistible curse that is already laid upon thee by that law
which thou art under, and which thou hast sinned against; though
thou livest the holiest life that any man can live in this world,
being under the law of works, and so not under the Covenant of
Grace, thou must be cut off without remedy; for thou hast sinned,
though afterwards thou live never so well.
The reasons for this that hath been spoken
are these-
First, The nature of God's justice calls for
it-that is, it calls for irrecoverable ruin on them that transgress
against this law; for justice gave it, and justice looks to have it
completely and continually obeyed, or else justice is resolved to
take place, and execute its office, which is to punish the
transgressor against it. You must understand that the justice of God
is as unchangeable as His love; His justice cannot change its
nature; justice it is, if it be pleased; and justice it is, if it be
displeased. The justice of God in this case may be compared to fire;
there is a great fire made in some place; if thou do keep out of it,
it is fire; if thou do fall into it, thou wilt find it fire; and
therefore the Apostle useth this as an argument to stir up the
Hebrews to stick close to Jesus Christ, lest they fall under the
justice of God by these words, "For our God is a consuming fire"
(Heb 12:29); into which, if thou fall, it is not for thee to get out
again, as it is with some that fall into a material fire; no, but he
that falls into this, he must lie there for ever; as it is clear
where he saith, "Who among us shall dwell with everlasting burnings,
and with devouring fire?" (Isa 33:14). For justice once offended
knoweth not how to show any pity or compassion to the offender, but
runs on him like a lion, takes him by the throat, throws him into
prison, and there he is sure to lie, and that to all eternity,
unless infinite satisfaction be given to it, which is impossible to
be given by any of us the sons of Adam.
Secondly, The faithfulness of God calls for
irrecoverable ruin to be poured out on those that shall live and die
under this covenant. If thou, having sinned but one sin against this
covenant, and shouldst afterwards escape damning, God must be
unfaithful to Himself and to His Word, which both agree as one.
First, he would be unfaithful to Himself; to Himself, that is, to
His justice, holiness, righteousness, wisdom, and power, if He
should offer to stop the running out of His justice for the damning
of them that have offended it. And secondly, He would be unfaithful
to His Word, His written Word, and disown, deny, and break that, of
which He hath said, "It is easier for Heaven and earth to pass, than
one tittle of the law to fail," or be made of none effect (Luke
16:17). Now, if He should not, according to His certain declarations
therein, take vengeance on those that fall and die within the threat
and sad curses denounced, in that His Word could not be fulfilled.
Thirdly, Because otherwise he would disown
the sayings of His Prophets, and gratify the sayings of His enemies;
His Prophets say He will take vengeance; His enemies say He will
not; His Prophets say He will remember their iniquities, and
recompense them into their bosom; but His enemies say they should do
well, and they shall have peace, though they walk after the
imaginations of their own hearts, and be not so strict as the Word
commands, and do not as it saith (Deu 29:19,20). But let me tell
thee, hadst thou a thousand souls, and each of them was worth a
thousand worlds, God would set them all on a light by fire, if they
fall within the condemnings of His Word, and thou die without a
Jesus, even the right Jesus; "for the Scriptures cannot be broken."
What! dost thou think that God, Christ, Prophets, and Scriptures,
will all lie for thee? and falsify their words for thee? It will be
but ill venturing thy soul upon that.
And the reasons for it are these:-First,
Because God is God; and secondly, Because man is man.
First, Because God is perfectly just and
eternally just, perfectly holy and eternally holy, perfectly
faithful and eternally faithful; that is, without any variableness
or shadow of turning, but perfectly continueth the same, and cannot
as well cease to be God as to alter or change the nature of His
Godhead. As He is thus the perfection of all perfections, He gave
out His Law to be obeyed; but if any offend it, then they fall into
the hands of this His eternal justice, and so must drink of His
irrevocable wrath, which is the execution of the same justice. I
say, this being thus, the law being broken, justice takes place, and
so faithfulness followeth to see that execution be done, and also to
testify that He is true, and doth denounce His unspeakable,
insupportable, and unchangeable vengeance on the party offending.
Secondly, Because thou art not as infinite as
God, but a poor created weed, that is here today and gone tomorrow,
and not able to answer God in His essence, being, and attributes;
thou art bound to fall under Him, for thy soul or body can do
nothing that is infinite in such a way as to satisfy this God, which
is an infinite God in all His attributes.
[Misery of man by this law.]
But to declare unto you the misery of man by
this law to purpose, I do beseech you to take notice of these
following particulars, besides what has been already spoken:-First,
I shall show the danger of them by reason of the law, as they come
from Adam; Second, as they are in their own persons particularly
under it.
[First, The danger of them by reason of the
law, as they come from Adam.]
1. As they come from Adam, they are in a sad
condition, because he left them a broken covenant. Or take it thus:
because they, while they were in him, did with him break that
covenant. O! this was the treasure that Adam left to his posterity;
it was a broken covenant, insomuch that death reigned over all his
children, and doth still to this day, as they come from him, both
natural and eternal death (Rom 5). It may be, drunkard, swearer,
liar, thief, thou dost not think of this.
2. He did not only leave them a broken
covenant, but also made them himself sinners against it. He [Adam]
made them sinners-"By one man's disobedience many were made sinners"
(Rom 5:19). And this is worse than the first.
3. Not only so, but he did deprive them of
their strength, by which at first they were enabled to stand, and
left them no more than dead men. O helpless state! O how beggarly
and miserable are the sons of Adam!
4. Not only so, but also before he left them
he was the conduit pipe through which the devil did convey off his
poisoned spawn and venom nature into the hearts of Adam's sons and
daughters, by which they are at this day so strongly and so
violently carried away, that they fly as fast to Hell, and the
devil, by reason of sin, as chaff before a mighty wind.
5. In a word, Adam led them out of their
paradise, that is one more; and put out their eyes, that is another;
and left them to the leading of the devil. O sad! Canst thou hear
this, and not have thy ears to tingle and burn on thy head? Canst
thou read this, and not feel thy conscience begin to throb and dag?
If so, surely it is because thou art either possessed with the
devil, or besides thyself.
[Second.] But I pass this, and come to the
second thing, which is, the cause of their being in a sad condition,
which is by reason of their being in their particular persons under
it.
1. Therefore, they that are under the law,
they are in a sad condition, because they are under that which is
more ready, through our infirmity, to curse than to bless; they are
under that called the ministration of condemnation, that is, they
are under that dispensation, or administration, whose proper work is
to curse and condemn, and nothing else (2 Cor 3).
2. Their condition is sad who are under the
law, because they are not only under that ministration that doth
condemn, but also that which doth wait an opportunity to condemn;
the law doth not wait that it might be gracious, but it doth wait to
curse and condemn; it came on purpose to discover sin, "The law
entered," saith the Apostle, "that the offence might abound" (Rom
5:20) or appear indeed to be that which God doth hate, and also to
curse for that which hath been committed; as he saith, "Cursed is
every one that continueth not in all things which are written in the
book of the law to do them" (Gal 3:10).
3. They are in a sad condition, because that
administration they are under that are under the law doth always
find fault with the sinner's obedience as well as his disobedience,
if it be not done in a right spirit, which they that are under that
covenant cannot do, by reason of their being destitute of faith;
therefore, I say, it doth control them, saying, "This was not well
done, this was done by the halves, this was not done freely, and
that was not done perfectly, and out of love to God." And hence it
is that some men, notwithstanding they labour to live as holy as
ever they can according to the law, yet they do not live a peaceable
life, but are full of condemnings, full of guilt and torment of
conscience, finding themselves to fail here, and to fall short
there, omitting this good which the law commands, and doing that
evil which the law forbids, but never giveth them one good word for
all their pains.
4. They that are under the law are in a sad
condition, because they are under that administration that will
never be contented with what is done by the sinner. If thou be under
this covenant, work as hard as thou canst, the law will never say,
"Well done"; never say, "My good servant"; no; but always it will be
driving thee faster, hastening of thee harder, giving thee fresh
commands, which thou must do, and upon pain of damnation not to be
left undone. Nay, it is such a master that will curse thee, not only
for thy sins, but also because thy good works were not so well done
as they ought to be.
5. They that are under this covenant or law,
their state is very sad, because this law doth command impossible
things of him that is under it; and yet doth but right in it, seeing
man at the first had in Adam strength to stand, if he would have
used it, and the law was given them, as I said before, when man was
in his full strength; and therefore no inequality if it commands the
same still, seeing God that gave thee strength did not take it away.
I will give you a similitude for the clearing of it. Set the case
that I give to my servant ten pounds, with this charge, Lay it out
for my best advantage, that I may have my own again with profit; now
if my servant, contrary to my command, goeth and spends my money in
a disobedient way, is it any inequality in me to demand of my
servant what I gave him at first? Nay, and though he have nothing to
pay, I may lawfully cast him into prison, and keep him there until I
have satisfaction. So here; the law was delivered to man at the
first when he was in a possibility to have fulfilled it; now, then,
though man have lost his strength, yet God is just in commanding the
same work to be done. Ay, and if they do not do the same things, I
say, that are impossible for them to do, it is just with God to damn
them, seeing it was they themselves that brought themselves into
this condition; therefore, saith the Apostle, "What things soever
the law (or commands) saith, it saith to them who are under the law;
that every mouth may be stopped, and all the world may become guilty
before God" (Rom 3:19). And this is thy sad condition that art under
the law (Gal 3:10).
But if any should object, and say, But the
law doth not command impossible things of natural man,-
I should answer in this case as the Apostle
did in another very much like unto it, saying, "Understanding
neither what they say, nor whereof they affirm." For doth not the
law command thee to love the Lord thy God with all thy soul, with
all they strength, with all thy might, etc., and can the natural man
do this? How can those that are accustomed to do evil, do that which
is commanded in this particular? "Can the Ethiopian change his skin,
or the leopard his spots?" (Jer 12:23).
Doth the law command thee to do good, and
nothing but good, and that with all thy soul, heart, and delight?
which the law as a Covenant of Works calleth for; and canst thou,
being carnal, do that? But there is no man that hath understanding,
if he should hear thee say so, but would say that thou wast either
bewitched or stark mad.
6. They that are under the law are in a sad
condition, because that though they follow the law, or Covenant of
Works; I say, though they follow it, it will not lead them to
Heaven; no, but contrariwise, it will lead them under the curse. It
is not possible, saith Paul, that any should be justified by the
law, or by our following of it; for by that "is the knowledge of
sin," and by it we are condemned for the same, which is far from
leading us to life, being the ministration of death (2 Cor 3). And
again; "Israel, which followeth after the law of righteousness, hath
not attained to the law of righteousness. Wherefore? Because they
sought it not by faith, but by the law, and by the works thereof"
(Rom 9:30-32).
7. They that are under the law are in a sad
condition, because they do not know whether ever they shall have any
wages for their work or no; they have no assurance of the pardon of
their sins, neither any hopes of eternal life; but poor hearts as
they are, they work for they do not know what, even like a poor
horse that works hard all day, and at night hath a dirty stable for
his pains; so thou mayest work hard all the days of thy life, and at
the day of death, instead of having a glorious rest in the Kingdom
of Heaven, thou mayest, nay, thou shalt, have for thy sins the
damnation of thy soul and body in Hell to all eternity; forasmuch,
as I said before, that the law, if thou sinnest, it doth not take
notice of any good work done by thee, but takes its advantage to
destroy and cut off thy soul for the sin thou hast committed.
8. They that are under the law are in a sad
condition, because they are under that administration; upon whose
souls God doth not smile, they dying there; for the administration
that God doth smile upon His children through, is the Covenant of
Grace, they being in Jesus Christ, the Lord of life and consolation;
but contrariwise to those that are under the law; for they have His
frowns, His rebukes, His threatenings, and with much severity they
must be dealt withal-"For they continued not in My covenant, and I
regarded them not, saith the Lord" (Heb 8:9).
9. They are in a sad condition, because they
are out of the faith of Christ; they that are under the law have not
the faith of Christ in them; for that dispensation which they are
under is not the administration of faith. The law is not of faith,
saith the Apostle (Gal 3:12).
10. Because they have not received the
Spirit; for that is received by the hearing of faith, and not by the
law, nor the works thereof (Gal 3:2).
11. In a word, if thou live and die under
that covenant, Jesus Christ will neither pray for thee, neither let
thee have one drop of His blood to wash away thy sins, neither shalt
thou be so much as one of the least in the Kingdom of Heaven; for
all these privileges come to souls under another covenant, as the
Apostle saith-"For such are not under the law, but under grace"-that
is, such as have a share in the benefits of Jesus Christ, or such as
are brought from under the first covenant into the second; or from
under the law into the grace of Christ's Gospel, without which
Covenant of Grace, and being found in that, there is no soul can
have the least hope of eternal life, no joy in the Holy Ghost, no
share in the privileges of saints, because they are tied up from
them by the limits and bonds of the Covenant of Works. For you must
understand that these two covenants have their several bounds and
limitations, for the ruling and keeping in subjection, or giving of
freedom, to the parties under the said covenants. Now they that are
under the law are within the compass and the jurisdiction of that,
and are bound to be in subjection to that; and living and dying
under that, they must stand and fall to that, as Paul saith, "To his
own master he standeth or falleth." The Covenant of Grace doth admit
to those that are under it also liberty and freedom, together with
commanding of subjection to the things contained in it, which I
shall speak to further hereafter.
[For what purpose the Law was added and
given.]
But now, that the former things may be
further made to appear-that is, what the sad condition of all them
that are under the law is, as I have shown you something of the
nature of the law, so also shall I show that the law was added and
given for this purpose, that it might be so with those that are out
of the Covenant of Grace.
First, God did give the law that sin might
abound, not that it should take away sin in any, but to discover the
sin which is already begotten, or that may be hereafter begotten, by
lust and Satan (Rom 5:20). I say, this is one proper work of the
law, to make manifest sin; it is sent to find fault with the sinner,
and it doth also watch that it may do so, and it doth take all
advantages for the accomplishing of its work in them that give ear
thereto, or do not give ear, if it have the rule over them. I say,
it is like a man that is sent by his lord to see and pry into the
labours and works of other men, taking every advantage to discover
their infirmities and failings, and to chide them? yea, to throw
them out of the Lord's favour for the same.
Second. Another great end why the Lord did
add or give the law, it was that no man might have anything to lay
to the charge of the Lord for His condemning of them that do
transgress against the same. You know that if a man should be had
before an officer or judge, and there be condemned, and yet by no
law, he that condemns him might be very well reprehended or reproved
for passing the judgment; yea, the party himself might have better
ground to plead for his liberty than the other to plead for the
condemning of him; but this shall not be so in the judgment-day, but
contrariwise; for then every man shall be forced to lay his hand on
his mouth, and hold his tongue at the judgment of God when it is
passed upon them; therefore saith the Apostle, "What things soever
the law saith, it saith to them who are under the law"; that is, all
the commands, all the cursings and threatenings that are spoken by
it, are spoken, saith he, "that every mouth may be stopped"; mark, I
beseech you, "it saith," saith he, "that every mouth may be stopped,
and all the world may become guilty before God" (Rom 3:19). So that
now, in case any in the judgment-day should object against the
judgment of God, as those in the 25th of Matthew do, saying, Lord,
when saw we Thee thus and thus? and why dost Thou pass such a sad
sentence of condemnation upon us? surely this is injustice, and not
equity: now for the preventing of this the law was given; ay, and
that it might prevent thee to purpose, God gave it betimes, before
either thy first father had sinned, or thou wast born. So that
again, if there should be these objections offered against the
proceedings of the Lord in justice and judgment, saying, Lord, why
am I thus condemned, I did not know it was sin? Now against these
two was the law given and that betimes, so that both these are
answered. If the first come in and say, Why am I judged? why am I
damned? then will the law come in, even all the Ten Commandments,
with every one of their cries against thy soul; the First saying, He
hath sinned against Me, damn him; the Second saying also, He hath
transgressed against Me, damn him; the Third also saying the same,
together with the Fourth, Fifth, Sixth, Seventh, Eighth, Ninth,
Tenth; even all of them will discharge themselves against thy soul
if thou die under the first covenant, saying, He or they have
transgressed against us, damn them, damn them: and I tell thee also,
that these ten great guns, the Ten Commandments, will, with
discharging themselves in justice against thy soul, so rattle in thy
conscience, that thou wilt in spite of thy teeth be immediately put
to silence, and have thy mouth stopped. And let me tell thee
further, that if thou shalt appear before God to have the Ten
Commandments discharge themselves against thee, thou hadst better be
tied to a tree, and have ten, yea, ten thousand of the biggest
pieces of ordnance in the world to be shot off against thee; for
these could go no further but only to kill the body; but they, both
body and soul, to be tormented in Hell with the devil to all
eternity.
Third, Again; if the second thing should be
objected, saying, But Lord, I did not think this had been sin, or
the other had been sin, for nobody told me so; then also will the
giving of the law take off that, saying, Nay, But I was given to thy
father Adam before he had sinned, or before thou wast born, and have
ever since been in thy soul to convince thee of thy sins, and to
control thee for doing the thing that was not right. Did not I
secretly tell thee at such a time, in such a place, when thou wast
doing of such a thing, with such an one, or when thou was all alone,
that this was a sin, and that God did forbid it, therefore if thou
didst commit it, God would be displeased with thee for it: and when
thou was thinking to do such a thing at such a time, did not I say,
Forbear, do not so? God will smite thee, and punish thee for it if
thou dost do it. And besides, God did so order it that you had me in
your houses, in your Bibles, and also you could speak and talk of
me; thus pleading the truth, thou shalt be forced to confess it is
so; nay, it shall be so in some sort with the very Gentiles and
barbarous people that fall far short of that light we have in these
parts of the world; for, saith the Apostle, "The Gentiles which have
not the law, do by nature the things contained in the law, these,
having not the law," that is, not written as we have, yet they "are
a law unto themselves: which show the works of the law written in
their hearts" (Rom 2:14,15). That is, they have the law of works in
them by nature, and therefore they shall be left without excuse; for
their own consciences shall stand up for the truth of this where he
saith, "Their conscience also bearing witness, and their thoughts
the meanwhile accusing or else excusing one another." Ay, but when?
Why, "in the day when God shall judge the secrets of men by Jesus
Christ according to my Gospel" (Rom 2:15,16). So this, I say, is
another end for which the Lord did give the law-namely, that God
might pass a sentence in righteousness, without being charged with
any injustice by those that shall fall under it in the judgment.
Fourth, A fourth end why the Lord did give
the law it was, because they that die out of Jesus Christ might not
only have their mouths stopped, but also that their persons "might
become guilty before God" (Rom 3:19). And indeed this will be the
ground of silencing, as I said before, they finding themselves
guilty, their consciences backing the truth of the judgment of God
passed upon them, "they shall become guilty"-that is, they shall be
fit vessels for the wrath of God to be poured out into, being filled
with guilt by reason of transgressions against the commandments;
thus, therefore, shall the parties under the first covenant be
"fitted to destruction" (Rom 9:22) even as wood or straw, being well
dried, is fitted for the fire; and the law was added and given, and
speaks to this very end, that sins might be shown, mouths might be
stopped from quarreling, and that "all the world," mark, "the world
may become guilty before God," and so be in justice for ever and
ever overthrown because of their sins.
And this will be so for these reasons-
1. Because God hath a time to magnify His
justice and holiness, as well as to show His forbearance and mercy.
We read in Scripture that His eyes are too pure to behold iniquity,
and then we shall find it true (Hab 1:13). We read in Scripture that
He will magnify the law, and make it honourable, and then He will do
it indeed. Now, because the Lord doth not strike so soon as He is
provoked by sin, therefore poor souls will not know nor regard the
justice of God, neither do they consider the time in which it must
be advanced, which will be when men drop under the wrath of God as
fast as hail in a mighty storm (2 Peter 3:9; Psa 50:21,22). Now,
therefore, look to it all you that count the long-suffering and
forbearance of God slackness; and because for the present He keepeth
silence, therefore to think that He is like unto yourselves. No, no;
but know that God hath His set time for every purpose of His, and in
its time it shall be advanced most marvelously, to the everlasting
astonishment and overthrow of that soul that shall be dealt withal
by justice and the law. O! how will God advance His justice! O! how
will God advance His holiness! First, by showing men that He in
justice cannot, will not regard them, because they have sinned; and,
secondly, in that His holiness will not give way for such unclean
wretches to abide in His sight, His eyes are so pure.
2. Because God will make it appear that He
will be as good as His Word to sinners. Sinners must not look to
escape always, though they may escape awhile, yet they shall not go
far all adoe unpunished; no, but they shall have their due to a
farthing, when every threatening and curse shall be accomplished and
fulfilled on the head of the transgressor. Friend, there is never an
idle word that thou speakest but God will account with thee for it;
there is never a lie thou tellest, but God will reckon with thee for
it; nay, there shall not pass so much as one passage in all thy
lifetime but God, the righteous God, will have it in the trial by
His law, if thou die under it, in the judgment-day.
[WHO THEY ARE THAT ARE UNDER THE COVENANT OF WORKS.]
THIRD. But you will say-"But who are those
that are thus under the law?"
Answ. Those that are under the law may be
branched out into three ranks of men; either, first, such as are
grossly profane, or such as are more refined; which may be two ways,
some in a lower sort, and some in a more eminent way.
First, Then they are under the law as a
Covenant of Works who are open profane, and ungodly wretches, such
as delight not only in sin, but also make their boast of the same,
and brag at the thoughts of committing of it. Now, as for such as
these are, there is a Scripture in the First Epistle of Paul to
Timothy Chapter 1, verses 9, 10, which is a notable one to this
purpose, "The law," saith he, "is not made for a righteous man," not
as it is a Covenant of Works, "but for the" unrighteous or "lawless
and disobedient, for the ungodly and for sinners, for unholy and
profane, for murderers of fathers and murderers of mothers, for
manslayers, for whoremongers, for them that defile themselves with
mankind, for menstealers, for liars," look to it, liars, "for
perjured persons, and," in a word, "if there be any other thing that
is not according to sound doctrine." These are one sort of people
that are under the law, and so under the curse of the same, whose
due is to drink up the brimful cup of God's eternal vengeance, and
therefore I beseech you not to deceive yourselves; for "know ye not
that the unrighteous shall not inherit the kingdom of God? Neither
fornicators, nor idolaters, nor adulterers, nor effeminate, nor
abusers of themselves with mankind, nor thieves, nor covetous, nor
drunkards, nor revilers, nor extortioners, shall inherit the kingdom
of God" (1 Cor 6:9,10). Poor souls, you think that you may have your
sins, your lusts, and pleasures, and yet you shall do pretty well,
and be let to go free in the judgment-day; but see what God saith of
such in Deuteronomy 29:19, 20-which shall "bless himself in his
heart, saying, I shall have peace," I shall be saved, I shall do as
well as others, in the day when God shall judge the world by Jesus
Christ; but, saith God, I will not spare them, no, but My anger and
My jealousy shall smoke against them. How far? Even to the executing
all the curses that are written in the Law of God upon them. Nay,
saith God, I will be even with them, "for I will blot out their
names from under Heaven." And indeed it must of necessity be so,
because such souls are unbelievers, in their sins, and under the
law, which cannot, will not, show any mercy on them; for it is not
the administration of mercy and life, but the administration of
death and destruction, as you have it (2 Cor 3:7,9); and all those,
every one of them, that are open profane, and scandalous wretches
are under it, and have been so ever since they came into the world
to this day; and they will for certain live and die under the same
dispensation, and then be damned to all eternity, if they be not
converted from under that covenant into and under the Covenant of
Grace, of which I shall speak in its place; and yet for all this,
how brag and crank 6 are our poor wantons and wicked ones in this
day of forbearance! as if God would never have a reckoning with
them, as if there was no law to condemn them, as if there was no
hellfire to put them into. But O how will they be deceived when they
shall see Christ sitting upon the judgment-seat, having laid aside
his priestly and prophetical office, and appearing only as a judge
to the wicked? when they shall see all the records of Heaven
unfolded and laid open; when they shall see each man his name in the
Book of Life, and in the book of the law; when they shall see God in
His majesty, Christ in His majesty, the saints in their dignity, but
themselves in their impurity. What will they say then? whither will
they fly then? where will they leave their glory? O sad state! (Isa
10:3).
Second. They are under the law also who do
not only so break and disobey the law, but follow after the law as
hard as ever they can, seeking justification thereby-that is, though
a man should abstain from the sins against the law, and labour to
fulfill the law, and give up himself to the law, yet if he look no
further than the law he is still under the law, and for all his
obedience to the law, the righteous Law of God, he shall be
destroyed by that law. Friend, you must not understand that none but
profane persons are under the law; no, but you must understand that
a man may be turned from a vain, loose, open, profane conversation
and sinning against the law, to a holy, righteous, religious life,
and yet be in the same state, under the same law, and as sure to be
damned as the other that are more profane and loose. And though you
may say this is very strange, yet I shall both say it and prove it
to be true. Read with understanding that Scripture in Romans
9:30-31, where the Apostle, speaking of the very thing, saith, "But
Israel, which followed after the law of righteousness"; mark, that
followed after the law of righteousness; they notwithstanding their
earnest pursuit, or hunting after the law of righteousness, "hath
not attained to the law of righteousness." It signifies thus much to
us, that let a man be never so earnest, so fervent, so restless, so
serious, so ready, so apt and willing to follow the law and the
righteousness thereof, if he be under that covenant, he is gone, he
is lost, he is deprived of eternal life, because he is not under the
ministration of life if he die there. Read also that Scripture,
Galatians 3:10, which saith, "For as many as are of the works of the
law are under the curse"; mark, they that are of the works of the
law. Now, for to be of the works of the law, it is to be of the
works of the righteousness thereof-that is, to abstain from sins
against the law, and to do the commands thereof as near as ever they
can for their lives, or with all the might they have: and therefore
I beseech you to consider it, for men's being ignorant of this is
the cause why so many go on supposing they have a share in Christ,
because they are reformed, and abstain from the sins against the
law, who, when all comes to all, will be damned notwithstanding,
because they are not brought out from under the Covenant of Works,
and put under the Covenant of Grace.
Object. "But can you in very deed make these
things manifestly evident from the Word of God? Methinks to reason
thus is very strange, that a man should labour to walk up according
to the Law of God as much as ever he can, and yet that man
notwithstanding this, should be still under the curse. Pray clear
it."
Answ. Truly this doth seem very strange, I do
know full well, to the natural man, to him that is yet in his
unbelief, because he goeth by beguiled reason; but for my part, I do
know it is so, and shall labour also to convince thee of the truth
of the same.
1. Then, the law is thus strict and severe,
that if a man do sin but once against it, he, I say, is gone for
ever by the law, living and dying under that covenant. If you would
be satisfied as touching the truth of this, do but read Galatians
3:10, where it saith "Cursed is every one," that is, not a man shall
miss by that covenant, "that continueth not in all," mark, in all
"things which are written in the book of the law to do them." (1.)
Pray mark, here is a curse, in the first place, if all things
written in the book of the law be not done, and that, continually
too-that is, without any failing or one slip, as I said before. Now
there is never a one in the world but before they did begin to yield
obedience to the least command, they in their own persons did sin
against it by breaking of it. The Apostle, methinks, is very notable
for the clearing of this in Romans 3:5. In the one he endeavours for
to prove that all had transgressed in the first Adam as he stood a
common person, representing both himself and us in his standing and
falling. "Wherefore," saith he, "as by one man sin entered into the
world, and death by sin; and so death passed upon all men," mark
that; but why? "for that all have sinned" (Rom 5:12). That is,
forasmuch as all naturally are guilty of original sin, the sin that
was committed by us in Adam; so this is one cause why none can be
justified by their obedience to the law, because they have in the
first place broken it in their first parents. But, (2.) in case this
should be opposed and rejected by quarrelsome persons, though there
be no ground for it, Paul hath another argument to back his
doctrine, saying, For we have proved (already) that both Jews and
Gentiles are all under sin. "As it is written, There is none
righteous, no, not one." "They are all gone out of the way, they are
together," mark, together, "become unprofitable, there is none that
doeth good, no, not one." "Their throat is an open sepulchre; with
their tongues they have used deceit, the poison of asps is under
their lips." Their "mouths are full of cursing and bitterness."
"Their feet are swift to shed blood." In a word, "Destruction and
misery are in their ways; and the way of peace have they not known."
Now then, saith he, having proved these things so clearly, the
conclusion of the whole is this, "That what things soever the law
saith," in both showing of sin, and cursing for the same, "it saith"
all "to them who are under the law that every mouth may be stopped,
and all the world may become guilty before God" (Rom 3:10,19). So
that here, I say, lieth the ground of our not being justified by the
law, even because, in the first place, we have sinned against it;
for know this for certain, that if the law doth take the least
advantage of thee by thy sinning against it, all that ever thou
shalt afterwards hear from it is nothing but Curse, curse, curse
him, "for not continuing in all things which are written in the book
of the law to do them."
2. Thou canst not be saved by the righteous
Law of God, the first covenant, because that, together with this thy
miserable state, by original and actual sins, before thou didst
follow the law, since thy turning to the law thou hast committed
several sins against the law-"In many things we offend all." So that
now thy righteousness to the law being mixed with sometimes the lust
of concupiscence, fornication, covetousness, pride, heart-risings
against God, coldness of affection towards Him, backwardness to good
duties, speaking idle words, having of strife in your hearts, and
such like; I say, these things being thus, the righteousness of the
law is become too weak through this our flesh (Rom 8:3), and so,
notwithstanding all our obedience to the law, we are yet through our
weakness under the curse of the law; for, as I said before, the law
is so holy, so just, and so good, that it cannot allow that any
failing or slip should be done by them that look for life by the
same. "Cursed is every one that continuteth not in everything" (Gal
3:10). And this Paul knew full well, which made him throw away all
his righteousness. But you will say, that was his own.
Answ. But it was even that which while he
calls it his own, he also calls it the righteousness of the law
(Phil 3:7-10) and to account it but dung, but as dirt on his shoes,
and that, that he might be found in Christ, and so be saved by Him
"without the deeds of the law" (Rom 3:28). But,
3. Set the case, the righteousness of the law
which thou hast was pure and perfect, without the least flaw or
fault, without the least mixture of the least sinful thought, yet
this would fall far short of presenting of thee blameless in the
sight of God. And that I prove by these arguments-(1.) The first
argument is, that that which is not Christ cannot redeem souls from
the curse, it cannot completely present them before the Lord; now
the law is not Christ; therefore the moral law cannot, by all our
obedience to it, deliver us from the curse that is due to us (Acts
4:12). (2.) The second argument is, that that righteousness that is
not the righteousness of faith, that is, by believing in Jesus
Christ, cannot please God; now the righteousness of the law as a
Covenant of Works is not the righteousness of faith; therefore the
righteousness of the law as acted by us, being under that covenant,
cannot please God. The first is proved in Hebrews 11:6, "But without
faith it is impossible to please Him"; mark, it is impossible. The
second thus, "The law is not of faith" (Gal 3:12; Rom 10:5,6),
compared with Galatians 3:11. "But that no man is justified by the
law in the sight of God, it is evident; for, The just shall live by
faith. And the law is not of faith."
But for the better understanding of those
that are weak of apprehension, I shall prove it thus-1. The soul
that hath eternal life, he must have it by right of purchase or
redemption (Heb 9:12; Eph 1:7). 2. This purchase of redemption must
be through the blood of Christ. "We have redemption through His
blood." "Without shedding of blood is no remission." Now the law is
not in a capacity to die, and so to redeem sinners by the purchase
of blood, which satisfaction justice calls for. Read the same
Scriptures (Heb 9:22). Justice calls for satisfaction, because thou
hast transgressed and sinned against it, and that must have
satisfaction; therefore all that ever thou canst do cannot bring in
redemption, though thou follow the law up the to the nail-head, as I
may say, because all this is not shedding of blood; for believe it,
and know it for certain, that though thou hadst sinned but one sin
before thou didst turn to the law, that one sin will murder thy
soul, if it be not washed away by blood, even by the precious blood
of Jesus Christ, that was shed when He did hang upon the cross on
Mount Calvary.
Object. But you will say, "Methinks, that
giving of ourselves up to live a righteous life should make God like
the better of us, and so let us be saved by Christ, because we are
so willing to obey His law."
Answ. The motive that moveth God to have
mercy upon sinners is not because they are willing to follow the
law, but because He is willing to save them. "Not for thy
righteousness, or for the uprighteous of thine heart dost thou go to
possess their land" (Deu 9:4-6). Now understand this: if thy will to
do righteousness was the first moving cause why God had mercy on
thee through Christ, then it must not be freely by grace-I say,
freely. But the Lord loves thee and saves thee upon free terms,
having nothing beforehand to make Him accept of thy soul, but only
the blood of Christ; therefore to allow of such a principle it is to
allow that grace is to be obtained by the works of the law, which is
as gross darkness as lies in the darkest dungeon in Popery, and is
also directly opposite to Scripture-For we are "justified freely by
His grace, through the redemption that is in Christ"; not through
the good that is in our selves, or done by us, no, "but by faith,
without"-mark that-"without the deeds of the law" (Rom 3:24-28).
Again, "Not of works, least any man should boast" (Eph 2:9). No, no,
saith he, "Not according to our works," or righteousness, "but
according to His own purpose"; mark "according to His own purpose
and grace, which was" a free gift, "given us in Christ Jesus," not
lately, but "before the world began" (2 Tim 1:9).
Object. But you will say, "Then why did God
give the law, if we cannot have salvation by following of it?"
Answ. I told you before that the law was
given for these following reasons-1. That thou mightest be convinced
by it of thy sins, and that thy sins might indeed appear very sinful
unto thee, which is done by the law these ways-(1.) By showing of
thee what a holy God He is that did give the law; and, (2.) By
showing thee thy vileness and wickedness, in that thou, contrary to
this holy God, hast transgressed against and broken this His holy
Law; therefore, saith Paul, "the law entered, that the offence might
abound," that is, by showing the creature the holiness of God, and
also its own vileness (Rom 5:20). 2. That thou mayest know that God
will not damn thee for nothing in the judgment-day. 3. Because He
would have no quarreling at His just condemning of them at that day.
4. Because He will make thee to know that He is a holy God and pure.
[WHAT MEN MAY ATTAIN TO THAT ARE UNDER THIS COVENANT OF WORKS.]
[FOURTH] Quest. "But seeing you have spoken
thus far, I wish you would do so much as to show in some
particulars, both what men have done, and how far they have gone,
and what they have received, being yet under this covenant, which
you call the ministration of condemnation."
Answ. This is somewhat a difficult question,
and had need be not only warily, but also home and soundly answered.
The question consists of three particulars-First, What men have
done; Second, How far men have gone; Third, What they have received,
and yet to be under the law, or Covenant of Works, and so in a state
of condemnation.
[First.] As for the first, I have spoken
something in general to that already; but for thy better
understanding I shall yet speak more particularly.
1. A man hath and may be convinced and
troubled for his sins, and yet be under this covenant, and that in a
very heavy and dreadful manner, insomuch that he find the weight of
them to be intolerable and too heavy for him to bear, as it was with
Cain, "My punishment," saith he, "is greater than I can bear" (Gen
4:13).
2. A man living thus under a sense of his
sins may repent and be sorry for them, and yet be under this
covenant, and yet be in a damned state. And when he, Judas, saw what
was done, he "repented" (Matt 27:3).
3. Men may not only be convinced, and also
repent for their sins, but they may also desire the prayers of the
children of God for them too, and yet be under this covenant and
curse, "Then Pharaoh called for Moses and Aaron, in haste, and he
said, I have sinned; entreat the LORD your God that He may take away
from me this death" (Exo 10:16, 17).
4. A man may also humble himself for his
offences and disobedience against his God, and yet be under this
covenant (1 Kings 21:24-19).
5. A man may make restitution unto men for
the offence he hath done unto them, and yet be under this covenant.
6. A man may do much work for God in his
generation, and yet be under this first covenant; as Jehu, who did
do that which God bid him (2 Kings 9:25, 26). And yet God
threateneth even Jehu, because though he did do the thing that the
Lord commanded him, yet he did it not from a right principle; for
had he, the Lord would not have said, "Yet a little while, and I
will avenge the blood of Jezreel upon the house of Jehu" (Hosea
1:4).
7. Men may hear and fear the servants of the
Lord, and reverence them very highly; yea, and when they hear, they
may not only hear, but hear and do, and that gladly too, not one or
two things, but many; mark, many things gladly, and yet be lost, and
yet be damned, "For Herod feared John," why? not because he had any
civil power over him, but because "he was a just man and an holy,
and observed him; and when he heard him, he did many things, and
heard him gladly" (Mark 6:20). It may be that thou thinkest that
because thou hearest such and such, therefore thou art better than
thy neighbours; but know for certain that thou mayest not only hear,
but thou mayest hear and do, and that not with a backward will, but
gladly-mark, "gladly"-and yet be Herod still, an enemy to the Lord
Jesus still. Consider this, I pray you.
Second. But to the second thing, which is
this, How far may such an one go? To what may such an one attain?
Whither may he arrive, and yet be an undone man, under this
covenant? [1] answer-
1. Such an one may be received into
fellowship with the saints, as they are in a visible way of walking
one with another; they may walk hand in hand together, "The Kingdom
of Heaven," that is, a visible company of professors of Christ, is
likened to ten virgins, which took their lamps, and went forth to
meet the Bridegroom, "five of them were wise, and five were foolish"
(Matt 25:1,2). These, in the first place, are called virgins-that
is, such as are clear from the pollutions of the world; secondly,
they are said to go forth-that is, from the rudiments and traditions
of men; thirdly, they do agree to take their lamps with them-that
is, to profess themselves the servants of Jesus Christ, that wait
upon Him, and for Him; and yet when He came, He found half of them,
even the virgins, that had lamps, that also went forth from the
pollutions of the world and the customs of men, to be such as lost
their precious souls (verse 12) which they should not have done, had
they been under the Covenant of Grace, and so not under the law.
2. They may attain to a great deal of honour
in the said company of professors, that which may be accounted
honour, insomuch that they may be put in trust with church affairs,
and bear the bag, as Judas did. I speak not this to shame the
saints, but, being beloved, I warn them; yet I speak this on purpose
that it might, if the Lord will, knock at the door of the souls of
professors. Consider Demas!
3. They may attain to speak of the Word as
ministers, and become preachers of the Gospel of Jesus Christ,
insomuch that the people where they dwell may even take up a proverb
concerning them, saying, "Is he among the prophets?" his gifts may
be so rare, his tongue may be so fluent, and his matter may be so
fit, that he may speak with a tongue like an angel, and speak of the
hidden mysteries, yea, of them all; mark that, and yet be nothing,
and yet be none of the Lord's anointed ones, with the Spirit of
grace savingly, but may live and die under the curse of the law (1
Cor 13:1-4).
4. They may go yet further; they may have the
gifts of the Spirit of God, which may enable them to cast out
devils, to remove the biggest hills or mountains in the world; nay,
thou mayest be so gifted as to prophesy of things to come, the most
glorious things, even the coming of the Lord Jesus Christ to reign
over all His enemies, and yet be but a Balaam, a wicked and a mad
prophet (2 Peter 2:16; Num 24:16-25).
5. There may not only stand thus for awhile,
for a little season, but they may stand thus till the coming of our
Lord Jesus Christ with His holy angels; ay, and not be discovered of
the saints till that very day. "Then all those virgins arose,"-the
wise and the foolish; then! when? why, when this voice was heard,
"Behold the Bridegroom cometh, go ye out to meet him" (Matt 25:1-6).
And yet were out of the Lord Jesus Christ, and yet were under the
law.
6. Nay, further, they may not only continue
in a profession till then, supposing themselves to be under the
grace of the Gospel, when indeed they are under the curse of the
law, but even when the Bridegroom is come, they may still be so
confident of their state to be good, that they will even reason out
the case with Christ why they are not let into the kingdom of glory,
saying, "Lord, Lord, we have eaten and drunk in Thy presence; and
Thou hast taught in our streets." Nay, further, "Have we not
prophesied in Thy name? and in Thy name have cast out devils?" Nay,
not only thus, but, "done many," mark, we have "done many wonderful
works." Nay, further, they were so confident, that they commanded,
in a commanding way, saying, "Lord, open to us." See here, I beseech
you, how far these went; they thought they had had intimate
acquaintance with Jesus Christ, they thought He could not choose but
save them; they had eat and drunk with Him, sat at the table with
Him, received power from Him, executed the same power. In Thy name
have we done thus and thus; even wrought many wonderful works (Matt
7:22; Luke 13:25,26). And yet these poor creatures were shut out of
the kingdom. O consider this, I beseech you, before it be too late,
lest you say, Lord, let us come in, when Christ saith, Thrust him
out (Verse 28). Hears you cry, "Lord open to us," when He saith,
"Depart, I know you not"; lest though you think of having joy, you
have "weeping and gnashing of teeth."
Third. But the third thing touched in the
question was this-What may such an one receive of God who is under
the curse of the law?
1. They may receive an answer to their
prayers from God at some times, for some things as they do stand in
need of. I find in Scripture that God did hear these persons that
the Apostle saith were cast out (Gen 21:17). "And God heard the
voice of the lad," even of cast-out Ishmael; "and the angel of God
called to Hagar" which was the bond-woman, and under the law (Gal
4:30). "out of heaven, and said unto her, Fear not; for God hath
heard the voice of the lad where he is." Friends, it may be you may
think, because you have your prayers answered in some particular
things, therefore you may suppose that as to your eternal state your
condition is very good. But you must know that God doth hear the cry
of a company of Ishmaelites, the sons of the bondwomen, who are
under the law as a Covenant of Works. I do not say He hears them as
to their eternal state, but He heareth them as to several straits
that they go through in this life, ay, and gives them ease and
liberty from their trouble. Here this poor wretch was almost
perished for a little water, and he cried, and God heard him, yea,
He heard him out of Heaven. Read also Psalm 107:23-29. "He gave them
their desire, but He sent leanness into their soul" (Psa 106:15). 7
But some may say, Methinks this is yet more
strange that God should hear the prayers, the cries of those that
are under the law, and answer them. Answ. I told you before, He doth
not hear them as to their eternal state, but as to their temporal
state; for God as their Creator hath a care for them, and causeth
the sun to shine upon them, and the rain to distill upon their
substance (Matt 5:45). Nay, He doth give the beasts in the field
their appointed food, and doth hear the young ravens when they cry,
which are far inferior to man (Psa 147:9). I say, therefore, that
God doth hear the cries of His creatures, and doth answer them too,
though not as to their eternal state; but may damn them nevertheless
when they die for all that.
2. They may receive promises from the mouth
of the Lord. There are many that have promises made to them by the
Lord in a most eminent way, and yet, as I said before, are such as
are cast out and called the children of the bond-woman, which is the
law-"And the angel of God called to Hagar out of Heaven," that was
the bond-woman, saying, "Fear not; for God hath heard the voice of
the lad where he is. Arise, lift up the lad, and hold him in thine
hand; FOR I WILL MAKE HIM,"-mark, there is the promise,-"for I will
make him," of the son of the bond-woman, "a great nation" (Gen
21:17,18).
3. Nay, they may go further; for they may
receive another heart than they had before, and yet be under the
law. There is no man, I think, but those that do not know what they
say, that will think or say that Saul was under the Covenant of
Grace; yet after he had talked with Samuel, and had turned his back
to go from him, saith the Scripture, "God gave him another heart" (1
Sam 10:9). Another heart, mark that, and yet an out-cast, a rejected
person (1 Sam 15:26,29). Friends, I beseech you, let not these
things offend you, but let them rather beget in your hearts an
inquiring into the truth of your condition, and be willing to be
searched to the bottom; and also, that everything which hath not
been planted by the Lord's right hand may be rejected, and that
there may be a reaching after better things, even the things that
will not only make thy soul think thy state is good now, but that
thou mayest be able to look sin, death, Hell, the curse of the law,
together with the Judge, in the face with comfort, having such a
real, sound, effectual work of God's grace in thy soul, that when
thou hearest the trumpet sound, seest the graves fly open, and the
dead come creeping forth out of their holes; when thou shalt see the
judgment set, the books opened, and all the world standing before
the judgment-seat; I say, that then thou mayest stand, and have that
blessed sentence spoken to thy soul, "Come, ye blessed of My Father,
inherit the kingdom prepared for you from the foundation of the
world" (Matt 25:34).
[Objection to this head.] But, you will say,
for all this, We cannot believe that we are under the law, for these
reasons-As, First. Because we have found a change in our hearts.
Second. Because we do deny that the Covenant of Works will save any.
Third. Because, for our parts, we judge ourselves far from legal
principles; for we are got up into as perfect a Gospel order, as to
matter of practice and discipline in church affairs, as any this day
in England, as we judge.
[Answer to reason first.] That man's belief
that is grounded upon anything done in him, or by him only, that
man's belief is not grounded upon the death, burial, resurrection,
ascension, and intercession of Jesus Christ; for that man that hath
indeed good ground of his eternal salvation, his faith is settled
upon that object which God is well pleased or satisfied withal,
which is that man that was born of Mary, even her first-born
Son-that is, he doth apply by faith to his soul the virtues of His
death, blood, righteousness, etc., and doth look for satisfaction of
soul nowhere else than from that, neither doth the soul seek to give
God any satisfaction as to justification any other ways; but doth
willingly and cheerfully accept of and embrace the virtues of
Christ's death, together with the rest of His things done by Himself
on the cross as a sacrifice, and since also as a priest, advocate,
mediator, etc.; and doth so really and effectually receive the
glories of the same, that thereby-mark that-thereby he is "changed
into the same image, from glory to glory" (2 Cor 3:18). Thus in
general; but yet more particular-
1. To think that your condition is good
because there is some change in you from a loose profane life, to a
more close, honest, and civil life and conversation; I say, to think
this testimony sufficient to ground the stress of thy salvation upon
is very dangerous. First, because such a soul doth not only lay the
stress of its salvation besides the man Christ Jesus that died upon
the cross; but secondly, because that his confidence is not grounded
upon the Saviour of sinners, but upon his turning from gross sins to
a more refined life,-and it may be to the performance of some good
duties-which is no Saviour; I say, this is very dangerous; therefore
read it, and the Lord help you to understand it; for unless you lay
the whole stress of the salvation of your souls upon the merits of
another man-namely, Jesus-and that by what He did do and is adoing
without you, for certain, as sure as God is in Heaven, your souls
will perish. And this must not be notionally neither, as with an
assenting of the understanding only; but it must be by the
wonderful, invisible, invincible power of the Almighty God, working
in your souls by His Spirit such a real, saving, holy faith, that
can, through the operation of the same Spirit by which it is
wrought, lay hold on and apply these most heavenly, most excellent,
most meritorious benefits of the man Christ Jesus, not only to your
heads and fancies, but to your very souls and consciences, so
effectually, that you may be able by the same faith to challenge the
power, madness, malice, rage, and destroying nature either of sin,
the law, death, the devil, together with Hell and all other evils,
throwing your souls upon the death, burial, resurrection, and
intercession of that man Jesus without (Rom 8:32-39). But,
2. Do you think that there was no change in
the five foolish virgins spoken of (Matt 25:1-3). Yes; there was
such a change in those very people, that the five wise ones could
give them admittance of walking with them in the most pure ways and
institutions of the Gospel of Christ, and yet but foolish; nay, they
walked with them, or shall walk with them, until the Lord Jesus
Christ shall break down from Heaven, and yet be but foolish virgins,
and yet but under the law, and so under the curse, as I said before.
[Second part of objection.] But, say you, We
have disowned the Covenant of Works, and turned from that also.
[Answer to reason second.] This is sooner
said than done. Alas, alas! poor souls think because they say,
"Grace, grace, it is freely by grace," therefore they are under the
Covenant of Grace. A very wide mistake. You must understand thus
much, that though you be such as can speak of the grace of the
Gospel, yet if you yourselves be not brought under the very Covenant
of Grace, you are yet, notwithstanding your talk and profession,
very far wide of a sense and of a share in the Covenant of the Grace
of God held forth in the Gospel.
The Jews were of a clearer understanding many
of them than to conclude that the law, and only the law, was the way
to salvation; for they, even they that received not the Christ of
God, did expect a Saviour should come (John 7:27,41-43). But they
were men that had not the Gospel Spirit, which alone is able to lead
them to the very life, marrow, or substance of the Gospel in right
terms; and so being muddy in their understandings, being between the
thoughts of a Saviour and the thoughts of the works of the law,
thinking that they must be accomplished for the obtaining of a
Saviour, and His mercy towards them; I say, between these they fell
short of a Saviour. As many poor souls in these days, they think
they must be saved alone by the Saviour, yet they think there is
something to be done on their parts for the obtaining of the
good-will of the Saviour, as their humiliation for sin, their
turning from the same, their promises, and vows, and resolutions to
become new men, join in church-fellowship, and what not; and thus
they, bringing this along with them as a means to help them, they
fall short of eternal salvation if they are not converted; see that
Scripture (Rom 9:30-32). The Apostle saith there, that they that
sought not did obtain, when they that did seek fell short. "What
shall we say then?" saith he. "That the Gentiles which sought not
after righteousness, have attained to righteousness," yea, "even the
righteousness which is of faith." And what else? Why, "but Israel
which followed after the law of righteousness, hath not attained to
the law of righteousness." How came that to pass? "Because," saith
he, "they sought it not by faith, but as it were"-mark, he doth not
say, altogether, no, "but as it were"-that is, because as they
sought, they did a little by the bye lean upon the works of the law.
And let me tell you, that this is such a hard thing to beat men off
of, that though Paul himself did take the work in hand, he did find
enough to do touching it; how is he fain to labour in the ten first
chapters of his Epistle to the Romans, for the establishing of those
that did even profess largely in the doctrine of grace, and also in
that Epistle to the Galatians; and yet lost many, do what he could.
Now, the reason why the doctrine of grace doth so hardly down-even
with professors-in truth, effectually, it is because there is a
principle naturally in man that doth argue against the same, and
that thus: Why, saith the soul, I am a sinner, and God is righteous,
holy, and just; His holy Law, therefore, having been broken by me, I
must, by all means, if ever I look to be saved, in the first place,
be sorry for my sins; secondly, turn from the same; thirdly, follow
after good duties, and practise the good things of the law and
ordinances of the Gospel, and so hope that God for Christ's sake may
forgive all my sins; which is not the way to God as a Father in
Christ, but the way, the very way to come to God by the Covenant of
Works, or the law, which things I shall more fully clear when I
speak to the second doctrine.
Again, therefore, those that this day profess
the Gospel, for the generality of them they are such, that,
notwithstanding their profession, they are very ignorant of that
glorious influence and lustre of the same; I say, they are ignorant
of the virtue and efficacy of the glorious things of Christ held
forth by and in the Gospel, which doth argue their not being under
the Covenant of Grace, but rather under the law or old covenant (2
Cor 4:3). As, for instance, if you do come among some professors of
the Gospel, in general you shall have them pretty busy and ripe;
also able to hold you in a very large discourse in several points of
the same glorious Gospel; but if you come to the same people and ask
them concerning heart-work, or what work the Gospel hath wrought on
them, and what appearance they have had of the sweet influences and
virtues on their souls and consciences, it may be they will give you
such an answer as this-I do find by the preaching thereof that I am
changed, and turned from my sins in a good measure, and also have
learned (but only in tongue), to distinguish between the law and the
Gospel, so that for the one-that is, for the Gospel-I can plead, and
also can show the weakness and unprofitableness of the other. And
thus far, it is like they may go, which is not far enough to prove
them under the Covenant of Grace, though they may have their tongues
so largely tipped with the profession of the same (2 Peter 2:20)
where he saith "For if after they have escaped the pollutions of the
world through the knowledge of the Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ,"
which was not a saving knowledge, "they are again entangled therein,
and overcome, the latter end" of that man "is worse than the
beginning" (Matt 25:1-4, etc.; Matt 7:22).
Object. But, you will say, is not this a fair
declaring of the work of grace, or doth it not discover that,
without all gainsaying, we are under the Covenant of Grace, when we
are able, not only to speak of the glorious Gospel of Jesus Christ,
but also to tell, and that by experience, that we have been changed
from worse to better, from sin to a holy life, by leaving of the
same, and that by hearing of the Word preached?
Answer 1. A man may, in the first place, be
able to talk of all the mysteries of the Gospel, and that like an
angel of God, and yet be no more in God's account than the sounding
of a drum, brass, or the tinkling of a cymbal, which are things
that, notwithstanding their sound and great noise, are absolutely
void of life and motion, and so are accounted with God as
nothing-that is, no Christians, no believers, not under the Covenant
of Grace for all that (1 Cor 13:1-4). 2. Men may not only do this,
but may also be changed in reality, for a season, from what they
formerly were, and yet be nothing at all in the Lord's account as to
an eternal blessing. Read 2 Peter 2:20, the Scripture which I
mentioned before; for, indeed, that one Scripture is enough to prove
all that I desire to say as to this very thing; for, if you observe,
there is enfolded therein these following things-(1.) That
reprobates may attain to a knowledge of Christ. (2.) This knowledge
may be of such weight and force, that, for the present, it may make
them escape the pollutions of the world, and this by hearing the
Gospel. "For if after they have escaped the pollutions of the world
through the knowledge of the Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ, they are
again entangled therein, and overcome, the latter end of that man is
worse than the beginning." [Some professors, take them at the best,
they are but like dogs, spewing out their filth for a time.] Now
that they are reprobates, dogs, or sows, read further; "But," saith
he, "it is happened unto them according to the true proverb, The dog
is turned to his own vomit again; and the sow that was washed to her
wallowing in the mire" (Verse 22).
[Third part of objection.] The last part of
the objection. But, say you, our practices in the worship of God
shall testify for us that we are not under the law; for we have by
God's goodness attained to as exact a way of waking in the
ordinances of God, and as near the examples of the Apostles, as ever
any churches since the primitive times, as we judge.
[Answer to reason third.] What then? Do you
think that the walking in the order of the churches of old, as to
matter of outward worship, is sufficient to clear you of your sins
at the judgment-day? or, do you think that God will be contented
with a little bodily subjection to that which shall vanish and fade
like a flower, when the Lord shall come from Heaven in flaming fire,
with His mighty angels (2 Thess 1:7,8). Alas, alas, how will such
professors as these are fall before the judgment-seat of Christ!
Then such a question as this, "Friend, how camest thou in hither,
not having a wedding garment?" will make them be speechless, and
fall down into everlasting burnings, thousands on a heap; for you
must know that it is not then your crying, Lord, Lord, that will
stand you in stead; not your saying, We have ate and drank in Thy
presence, that will keep you from standing on the left hand of
Christ. It is the principle as well as the practice that shall be
inquired into at that day.
Quest. The principle, you will say, what do
you mean by that?
Answ. My meaning is, the Lord Jesus Christ
will then inquire and examine whether the spirit from which you
acted was legal or evangelical-that is, whether it was the Spirit of
adoption that did draw you out to the thing you took in hand, or a
mere moral principle, together with some shallow and common
illuminations into the outward way of the worship of God, according
to Gospel rule.
Quest. But, you will say, it is like, How
should this be made manifest and appear?
Answ. I shall speak briefly in answer
hereunto as followeth-First, then, that man that doth take up any of
the ordinances of God-namely, as prayer, baptism, breaking of bread,
reading, hearing, alms-deeds, or the like; I say, he that doth
practise any of these, or such like, supposing thereby to procure
the love of Christ to his own soul, he doth do what he doth from a
legal, and not from an evangelical or Gospel spirit: as thus-for a
man to suppose that God will hear him for his prayer's sake, for his
alm's sake, for his humiliation's sake, or because he hath promised
to make God amends hereafter, whereas there is no such thing as a
satisfaction to be made to God by our prayers or whatever we can do;
I say, there is no such way to have reconciliation with God in. And
so also for men to think, because they are got into such and such an
ordinance, and have crowded themselves into such and such a society,
that therefore they have got pretty good shelter from the wrath of
the Almighty; when, alas, poor souls, there is no such thing. No,
but God will so set His face against such professors, that His very
looks will make them to tear their very flesh; yea, make them to
wish would they had the biggest millstone in the world hanged about
their neck, and they cast into the midst of the sea. For, friends,
let me tell you, though you can now content yourselves without the
holy, harmless, undefiled, perfect righteousness of Christ; yet
there is a day a-coming in which there is not one of you shall be
saved but those that are and shall be found clothed with that
righteousness; God will say to all the rest, "Take them, bind them
hand and foot, and cast them into outer darkness; there shall be
weeping and gnashing of teeth" (Matt 22:13). For Christ will not say
unto men in that day, Come, which of you made a profession of Me,
and walked in church-fellowship with My saints: no; but then it
shall be inquired into, who have the reality of the truth of grace
wrought in their hearts. And, for certain, he that misseth of that
shall surely be cast into the Lake of Fire, there to burn with the
devils and damned men and women; there to undergo the wrath of an
eternal God, and that not for a day, a month, a year, but for ever,
for ever, for ever and ever; there is that which cutteth to the
quick. Therefore, look to it, and consider now what you do, and
whereon you hang your souls; for it is not every pin that will hold
in the judgment, not every foundation that will be able to hold up
the house against those mighty, terrible, soul-drowning floods and
destroying tempests which then will roar against the soul and body
of a sinner (Luke 6:47-49). And, if the principle be rotten, all
will fall, all will come to nothing. Now, the principle is this-Not
to do things because we would be saved, but to do them from
this-namely, because we do really believe that we are and shall be
saved. But do not mistake me; I do not say we should slight any holy
duties; God forbid; but I say, he that doth look for life because he
doth do good duties, he is under the Covenant of Works, the law; let
his duties be never so eminent, so often, so fervent, so zealous.
Ay, and I say, as I said before, that if any man or men, or
multitudes of people, do get into never so high, so eminent; and
clear practices and Gospel order, as to church discipline, if it be
done to this end I have been speaking of, from this principle, they
must and shall have these sad things fall to their share which I
have made mention of.
Object. But, you will say, can a man use
Gospel ordinances with a legal spirit?
Answ. Yes, as easily as the Jews could use
and practise circumcision, though not the moral or Ten Commandments.
For this I shall be bold to affirm, that it is not the commands of
the New Testament administration that can keep a man from using of
its self [that administration] in a legal spirit; for know this for
certain, that it is the principle, not the command, that makes the
subjector to the same either legal or evangelical, and so his
obedience from that command to be from legal convictions or
evangelical principles.
Now, herein the devil is wondrous subtle and
crafty, in suffering people to practise the ordinances and commands
of the Gospel, if they do but do them in a legal spirit, [I beseech
you, do not think because I say this, therefore I am against the
ordinances of the Gospel, for I do honour them in their places, yet
would not that any of them should be idolized, or done in a wrong
spirit,] from a spirit of works; for he knows then, that if he can
but get the soul to go on in such a spirit, though they do never so
many duties, he shall hold them sure enough; for he knows full well
that thereby they do set up something in the room of, or, at the
least, to have some, though but a little, share with the Lord Jesus
Christ in their salvation; and if he can but get thee here, he knows
that he shall cause thee by thy depending a little upon the one, and
so thy whole dependence being not upon the other, that is, Christ,
and taking of him upon his own terms, thou wilt fall short of life
by Christ, though thou do very much busy thyself in a suitable
walking, in an outward conformity to the several commands of the
Lord Jesus Christ. And let me tell you plainly, that I do verily
believe that as Satan by his instruments did draw many of the
Galatians by circumcision (though, I say, it was none of the
commands of the moral law) to be debtors to do upon pain of eternal
damnation the whole of the moral law, so also Satan, in the time of
the Gospel, doth use even the commands laid down in the Gospel, some
of them, to bind the soul over to do the same law; the thing being
done and walked in, by and in the spirit; for, as I said before, it
is not the obedience to the command that makes the subjector thereto
evangelical, or of a Gospel spirit; but, contrariwise, the principle
that leads out the soul to the doing of the command, that makes the
persons that do thus practise any command, together with the command
by them practised, either legal or evangelical. As, for instance,
prayer-it is a Gospel command; yet if he that prays doth it in a
legal spirit, he doth make that which in itself is a Gospel command
an occasion of leading him into a Covenant of Works, inasmuch as he
doth it by and in that old covenant spirit.
Again; giving of alms is a Gospel command;
yet if I do give alms from a legal principle, the command to me is
not Gospel, but legal, and it binds me over, as aforesaid, to do the
whole law-"For he is not a Jew," nor a Christian, "which is one
outwardly"-that is, one only by an outward subjection to the
ordinances of prayer, hearing, reading, baptism, breaking of bread,
etc.-"But he is a Jew," a Christian, "which is one inwardly," who is
rightly principled, and practiseth the ordinances of the Lord from
the leadings forth of the Spirit of the Lord, from a true and saving
faith in the Lord (Rom 2:28,29). Those men spoken of in the 7th of
Matthew, for certain, for all their great declaration, did not do
what they did from a right Gospel spirit; for had they, no question
but the Lord would have said, "Well done, good and faithful
servant." But in that the Lord Jesus doth turn them away into Hell,
notwithstanding their great profession of the Lord, and of their
doing in His name, it is evident that notwithstanding all that they
did do, they were still under the law, and not under that covenant
as true believers are-to wit, the Covenant of Grace; and if so, then
all their duties that they did, of which they boasted before the
Lord, was not in and by a right evangelical principle or spirit.
Again, saith the Apostle, "Whatsoever is not
of faith is sin," (Rom 14:23); but there are some that do even
practise baptism, breaking of bread, together with other ordinances,
and yet are unbelievers; therefore unbelievers doing these things,
they are not done in faith but sin. Now to do these things in sin,
or without faith, it is not to do things in an evangelical or Gospel
spirit; also they that do these things in a legal spirit, the very
practising of them renders them not under the law of Christ, as Head
of His Church, but the works they do are so much contradiction to
the Gospel of God, or the Covenant of Grace, that they that do them
thus do even set up against the Covenant of Grace; and the very
performance of them is of such force that it is sufficient to drown
them that are subjects thereunto, even under the Covenant of Works;
but this poor souls are not aware of, and there is their misery.
Quest. But have you no other way to discover
the things of the Gospel, how they are done with a legal principle,
but those you have already made mention of?
Answ. That thou mightest be indeed satisfied
herein, I shall show you the very manner and way that a legal, or
old-covenant-converted professor, bear with the terms, doth take
both in the beginning, middle, and the end of his doing of any duty
or command, or whatsoever it be that he doth do. 1. He thinking this
or that to be his duty, and considering of the same, he is also
presently persuaded in his own conscience that God will not accept
of him if he leave it undone; he seeing that he is short of his
duty, as he supposeth, while this is undone by him, and also judging
that God is angry with him until the thing be done, he, in the
second place, sets to the doing of the duty, to the end he may be
able to pacify his conscience by doing of the same, persuading of
himself that now the Lord is pleased with him for doing of it. 2.
Having done it, he contents himself, sits down at his ease, until
some further convictions of his duty to be done, which when he seeth
and knoweth, he doth do it as aforesaid, from the same principle as
he did the former, and so goeth on in his progress of profession.
This is to do things from a legal principle, and from an
old-covenant spirit; for thus runs that covenant, "The man that doth
these things shall live in them," of "by them" (Lev 18:5; Gal 3:12;
Rom 10:5). But more of this in the use of this doctrine.
Object. But, you will say, by these words of
yours you do seem to deny that there are conditional promises in the
Gospel, as is clear, in that you strike at such practices as are
conditional, and commanded to be done upon the same.
Answ. The thing that I strike at is this,
that a man in or with a legal spirit should not, nay, cannot, do any
conditional command of the Gospel acceptably, as to his eternal
state, because he doth it in an old-covenant spirit. "No man putteth
new wine into old bottles"; but new wine must have new bottles, a
Gospel command must have a Gospel spirit, or else the wine will
break the bottles, or the principle will break the command.
Object. Then you do grant that there are
conditional promises in the New Testament, as in the moral law, or
Ten Commands.
Answ. Though this be true, yet the
conditional promises in the New Testament do not call to the same
people in the same state of unregeneracy to fulfill them upon the
same conditions.
The Law and the Gospel being two distinct
covenants, they are made in divers ways, and the nature of the
conditions also being not the same, as saith the Apostle, the
righteousness of the law saith one thing, and the righteousness of
faith saith another (Rom 10:4-6). That is, the great condition in
the law is, If you do these things, you shall live by them; but the
condition, even the greatest condition laid down for a poor soul to
do, as to salvation-for it is that we speak of-is to believe that my
sins be forgiven me for Jesus Christ's sake, without the works or
righteousness of the law, on my part, to help forward. "To him that
worketh not," saith the Apostle [that is] for salvation, "but
believeth on Him that justifieth the ungodly, his faith"-mark, "his
faith is counted for righteousness" (Rom 4:5). So that we, saith,
he, "conclude that a man is justified by faith without"-mark again,
"without the deeds of the law" (Rom 3:28).
But again; there is never a condition in the
Gospel that can be fulfilled by an unbeliever; and therefore,
whether there be conditions or whether there be none, it makes no
matter to thee who art without the faith of Christ; for it is
impossible for thee in that state to do them, so as to be ever the
better as to thy eternal estate; therefore, lest thou shouldst split
thy soul upon the conditions laid down in the Gospel, as thou wilt
do if thou go about to do them only with a legal spirit; but, I say,
to prevent this, see if thou canst fulfill the first condition; that
is, to believe that all thy sins are forgiven thee, not for any
condition that hath been or can be done by thee, but merely for the
Man's sake that did hang on Mount Calvary, between two thieves, some
sixteen hundred years ago and odd. And, I say, see if thou canst
believe that at that time He did, when He hanged on the Cross, give
full satisfaction, for all thy sins, before thou in thy person hadst
committed ever a one. I say, see if thou canst believe this; and
take heed thou deceive not thyself with an historical, notional, or
traditional acknowledgment of the same. And, secondly, see if thou
canst so well fulfill this condition, that the very virtue and
efficacy that it hath on thy soul will engage thee to fulfill those
other conditions, really in love to that Man whom thou shouldst
believe hath frankly and freely forgiven thee all, without any
condition acted by thee to move Him thereto, according to that
saying in 2 Corinthians 5:14, 15; and then thy doing will arise from
a contrary principle than otherwise it will do-that is, then thou
wilt not act and do because thou wouldst be accepted of God, but
because thou hast some good hope in thy heart that thou art accepted
of Him already, and not on thine, but wholly and alone upon another
man's account; for here runs the Gospel spirit of faith: "We
believe,"-mark, "We believe, and therefore speak." So we believe,
and therefore do (2 Cor 4:13). Take heed, therefore, that you do not
DO, that you may believe, but rather believe so effectually that you
may DO, even all that Jesus doth require of you from a right
principle, even out of love to your dear Lord Jesus Christ, which
thing I shall speak to more fully by and by.
Object. But what do you mean by those
expressions? Do not do that you may believe, but believe so
effectually that you may do.
Answ. When I say, Do not do that you may
believe, I mean, do not think that any of the things that thou canst
do will procure or purchase faith from God unto thy soul; for that
is still the old-covenant spirit, the spirit of the law, to think to
have it for thy doing. They that are saved, they are saved by grace,
through faith, and that not of themselves, not for anything that
they can do, for they are both the free gift of God, "Not of" doing,
or of "works, lest any man should," be proud, and "boast" (Eph
2:8,9). Now, some people be so ignorant as to think that God will
give them Christ, and so all the merits of His, if they will be but
valiant, and do something to please God, that they may obtain Him at
His hands; but let me tell them, they may lose a thousand souls
quickly, if they had so many, by going this way to work, and yet be
never the better; for the Lord doth not give His Christ to any upon
such conditions, but He doth give Him freely; that is, without
having respect to anything that is in thee (Rev 22:17; Isa 55:1,2).
To him that is athirst will I give; He doth not say, I will sell;
but, I will give him the water of life freely (Rev 21:6).
Now, if Christ doth give it, and that freely,
then He doth not sell if for anything that is in the creature; but
Christ doth give Himself, as also doth His Father, and that freely,
not because there is anything in us, or done by us, that moves Him
thereunto. If it were by doing, then, saith Paul, "Grace is not
grace," seeing it is obtained by works; but grace is grace, and that
is the reason it is given to men without their works. And if it be
by grace, that is, if it be a free gift from God, without anything
foreseen as done, or to be done, by the creature, then it is not of
works, which is clear; therefore it is grace, without the works of
the law. But if you say, Nay, it is of something in the man done by
him that moves God thereunto; then you must conclude that either
grace is no grace, or else that works are grace and not works. Do
but read with understanding (Rom 11:6).
Now before I go any further, it may be
necessary to speak a word or two to some poor souls that are willing
to close in with Jesus Christ, and would willingly take Him upon His
own terms, only they being muddy in their minds, and have not yet
attained the understanding of the terms and conditions of the two
covenants, they are kept off from closing with Christ; and all is,
because they see they can do nothing [to merit His favour]. As, for
example, come to some souls, and ask them how they do, they will
tell you presently that they are so bad that it is not to be
expressed. If you bid them believe in Jesus Christ, they will answer
that they cannot believe; if you ask them why they cannot believe,
they will answer, because their hearts are so hard, so dead, so
dull, so backward to good duties; and if their hearts were but
better, if they were more earnest, if they could pray better, and
keep their hearts more from running after sin, then they could
believe; but should they believe with such vile hearts, and presume
to believe in Christ, and be so filthy? Now all this is because the
spirit of the law still ruleth in such souls, and blinds them so
that they cannot see the terms of the Gospel. To clear this, take
the substance or the drift of these poor souls, which is this-"If I
were better, then I think I could believe; but being so bad as I am,
that is the reason that I cannot." This is just to do something that
I may believe, to work that I may have Christ, to do the law that I
may have the Gospel; or thus, to be righteous that I may come to
Christ. O man! thou must go quite back again, thou art out of the
way, thou must believe, because thou canst not pray, because thou
canst not do; thou must believe, because there is nothing in thee
naturally that is good, or desireth after good, or else thou wilt
never come to Christ as a sinner; and if so, then Christ will not
receive thee; and if so, then thou mayest see that to keep off from
Christ because thou canst not do, is to be kept from Christ by the
law, and to stand off from Him because thou canst not buy Him. Thus
having spoken something by the way for the direction of those souls
that would come to Christ, I shall return to the former discourse,
wherein ariseth this objection-
Object. But you did but even now put souls
upon fulfilling the first condition of the Gospel, even to believe
in Christ, and so be saved; but now you say it is alone by grace,
without condition; and therefore by these words, there is first a
contradiction to your former sayings, and also that men may be saved
without the condition of faith, which to me seems a very strange
thing. I desire, therefore, that you would clear out what you have
said, to my satisfaction.
Answer, 1. Though there be a condition
commanded in the Gospel, yet He that commands the condition doth not
leave His children to their own natural abilities, that in their own
strength they should fulfill them, as the law doth; but the same God
that doth command that the condition be fulfilled, even He doth help
His children by His Holy Spirit to fulfill the same condition; "For
it is God which worketh in you,"-mark "in you," believers, "both to
will and to do of His own good pleasure" (Phil 2:13). "Thou also
hast wrought all our works in us, and for us" (Isa 26:12). So that,
if the condition be fulfilled, it is not done by the ability of the
creature. But,
2. Faith, as it is a gift of God, or an act
of ours, take it which way you will, if we speak properly of
salvation, it is not the first nor the second cause of our
salvation, but the third, and that but instrumentally neither-that
is, it only layeth hold of and applieth to us that which saveth us,
which is the love of God, through the merits of Christ, which are
the two main causes of our salvation, without which all other things
are nothing, whether it be faith, hope, love, or whatever can be
done by us. And to this the great Apostle of the Gentiles speaks
fully, for, saith he, "God, who is rich in mercy, loved us, even
when we were dead in sins" (Eph 2:4,5). That is, when we were
without faith, and that was the cause why we believed for He thereby
hath quickened us together, through the meritorious cause, which is
Christ, and so hath saved us by grace-that is, of His own voluntary
love and good will; the effect of which was this, He gave us faith
to believe in Christ. Read soberly Ephesians 2:4-8. Faith, as the
gift of God, is not the Saviour, as our act doth merit nothing;
faith was not the cause that God gave Christ as the first, neither
is it the cause why God converts men to Christ; but faith is a gift
bestowed upon us by the gracious God, the nature of which is to lay
hold on Christ, that God afore did give for a ransom to redeem
sinners; this faith hath its nourishment and supplies from the same
God that at the first did give it, and is the only instrument,
through the Spirit, that doth keep the soul in a comfortable frame,
both to do and suffer for Christ; helps the soul to receive comfort
from Christ when it can get none from itself, beareth up the soul in
its progress heavenwards. But that it is the first cause of
salvation, that I deny, or that it is the second, I deny; but it is
only the instrument, or hand, that receiveth the benefits, that God
hath prepared for thee before thou hadst any faith; so that we do
nothing for salvation as we are men. But if we speak properly, it
was God's grace that moved Him to give Christ a ransom for sinners;
and the same God, with the same grace, that doth give to the soul
faith to believe, and so, by believing, to close in with Him whom
God out of His love and pity did send into the world to save
sinners, so that all the works of the creature are shut out as to
justification and life, and men are saved freely by grace. I shall
speak no more here; but in my discourse upon the second covenant, I
shall answer a Hell-bred objection or two, to forewarn sinners how
they turn the grace of God into wantonness.
And thus, you see, I have briefly spoken to
you something touching the law. First, what it is, and when given;
secondly, how sad those men's conditions are that are under it;
thirdly, who they are that be under it; fourthly, how far they may
go, and what they may do and receive, and yet be under it; which
hath been done by way of answers to several questions, for the
better satisfaction of those that may stand in doubt of the truth of
what hath been delivered.
Now, in the next place, I shall come to some
application of the truth of that which hath been spoken; but I shall
in the first place speak something to he second doctrine, and then
afterwards I shall speak something by way of use and application to
this first doctrine.
[DOCTRINE SECOND.]
The second doctrine now to be spoken to is,
TO SHOW THAT THE PEOPLE OF GOD ARE NOT UNDER THE LAW BUT UNDER
GRACE-"For ye are not under the law, but under grace" (Rom 6:14).
You may well remember that from these words I
did observe these two great truths of the Lord-FIRST, That there are
some in Gospel times that are under the law, or Covenant of Works.
SECOND, That there is never a believer under the law, or Covenant of
Works, but under grace. I have spoken something to the former of
these truths-to wit, that there are some under the law, together
with who they are, and what their condition is, that are under it.
Now I am to speak to the second, and to show you who they are, and
what their condition is, that are under that [Covenant of Grace].
But before I come to that, I shall speak a
few words to show you what the word "grace" in this place signifies;
[I touched upon this in the first doctrine] for the word "grace" in
the Scripture referreth sometimes to favour with men (Gen 33:10;
39:4; 50:4). Sometimes to holy qualifications of saints (2 Cor 8:7).
And sometimes to hold forth the condescension of Christ in coming
down from the glory which He had with His Father before the world
was, to be made of no reputation, and a servant to men (2 Cor 8:9;
Phil 2:7). Again: sometimes it is taken for the free, rich, and
unchangeable love of God to man, through Jesus Christ, that for our
cause and sakes did make Himself poor; and so it is to be understood
in these words, "For ye are not under the law," to be cursed, and
damned, and sent headlong to Hell, "but" you are "under grace," to
be saved, to be pardoned, to be preserved, "and kept by the mighty
power of God, through faith," which alone is the gift of grace,
"unto eternal glory." This one Scripture alone proves the same-"For
by grace are ye saved" (Eph 2:8), by free grace, by rich grace, by
unchangeable grace. And you are saved from the curse of the law;
from the power, guilt, and filth of sin; from the power, malice,
madness, and rage of the devil; from the wishes, curses, and desires
of wicked men; from the hot, scalding, flaming, fiery furnace of
Hell; from being arraigned as malefactors, convinced, judged,
condemned, and fettered with the chains of our sins to the devils to
all eternity; and all this freely, freely by His grace (Rom 3:24) by
rich grace unchangeable grace; for, saith He, "I am the LORD, I
change not: therefore ye sons of Jacob are not consumed" (Mal 3:6).
This is grace indeed.
The word "grace," therefore, in this
Scripture (Rom 6:14) is to be understood of the free love of God in
Christ to sinners, by virtue of the new covenant, in delivering them
from the power of sin, from the curse and condemning power of the
old covenant, from the destroying nature of sin, by its continual
workings; as is all evident if you read with understanding the words
as they lie-"For," saith he, "sin shall not have dominion over you,"
or, it shall not domineer, reign, or destroy you, though you have
transgressed against the Covenant of Works, the law; and the reason
is rendered in these words, "For ye are not under the law"-that is,
under that which accuseth, chargeth, condemneth and brings execution
on the soul for sin,-"but under grace"; that is, under that which
frees you, forgives you, keeps you, and justifies you from all your
sins, adversaries, or whatever may come in to lay anything to your
charge to damn you. For that is truly called grace in this sense
that doth set a man free from all his sins, deliver him from all the
curses of the law, and what else can be laid to His charge, freely,
without any foresight in God to look at what good will be done by
the party that hath offended; and also that doth keep the soul by
the same power through faith-which also is his own proper gift-unto
eternal glory.
Again; that it is a pardon not conditional,
but freely given, consider, first, it is set in opposition to
works-"Ye are not under the law." Secondly, The promise that is made
to them (saying, "Sin shall not have dominion over you") doth not
run with any condition as on their part to be done; but merely and
alone because they were under, or because they had the grace of God
extended to them. "Sin shall not have dominion over you: for," mark
the reason, "ye are not under the law, but under grace."
The words being thus opened, and the truth
thus laid down, HOW THERE IS NEVER A BELIEVER UNDER THE COVENANT OF
WORKS, BUT UNDER GRACE, the free, rich, unchangeable love of God, it
remaineth that, in the first place, we prove the doctrine, and after
that proceed.
[THE DOCTRINE PROVED.]
Now in the doctrine there are two things to
be considered and proved-FIRST, That believers are under grace.
SECONDLY, Not under the law as a Covenant of Works; for so you must
understand me. For these two we need go no further than the very
words themselves; the first part of the words proves the first part
of the doctrine, "Ye are not under the law"; the second part proves
the other, "but" ye are "under grace." But besides these, consider
with me a few things for the demonstrating of these truths, as,
First. They are not under the law, because
their sins are pardoned, which could not be if they were dealt
withal according to the law, and their being under it; for the law
alloweth of no repentance, but accuseth, curseth and condemneth
every one that is under it-"Cursed is every one that continueth not
in all things which are written in the Book of the Law to do them"
(Gal 3:10). But, I say, believers having their sins forgiven them,
it is because they are under another, even a new covenant-"Behold,
the days come, saith the LORD, when I will make a new covenant with
them."-"For I will be merciful to their unrighteousness, and their
sins and their iniquities will I remember no more" (Heb 8:12).
Second. They are not under the law, because
their sins and iniquities are not only forgiven, but they are
forgiven them freely. They that stand in the first covenant, and
continue there, are to have never a sin forgiven them unless they
can give God a complete satisfaction; for the law calls for it at
their hands, saying, "Pay me that thou owest." O! but when God deals
with His saints by the Covenant of Grace it is not so; for it is
said, "And when" He saw "they had nothing to pay, He frankly" and
freely "forgave them" all-"I will heal their backsliding; I will
love them freely."-I will blot "out thy transgressions for Mine own
sake," etc. (Luke 7:42; Hosea 14:4; Isa 43:25).
Third. The saints are not under the law,
because the righteousness that they stand justified before God in is
not their own actual righteousness by the law, but by imputation,
and is really the righteousness of Another-namely, of God in Christ
(2 Cor 5:21; Phil 3:9). "Even the righteousness of God, which is by
faith of Jesus Christ unto all and upon all," that is, imputed to
"them that believe" (Rom 3:22). But if they were under the old
covenant, the Covenant of Works, then their righteousness must be
their own, [But it is impossible that the righteousness of man by
the law should save him.] or no forgiveness of sins-"If thou doest
well, shalt thou not be accepted?" but if thou transgress, "sin
lieth at the door," saith the law (Gen 4:7).
Fourth. In a word, whatsoever they do
receive, whether it be conversion to God; whether it be pardon of
sin; whether it be faith or hope; whether it be righteousness;
whether it be strength" whether it be the Spirit, or the fruits
thereof; whether it be victory over sin, death, or Hell; whether it
be Heaven, everlasting life, and glory inexpressible; or whatsoever
it be, it comes to them freely, God having no first eye to what they
would do, or should do, for the obtaining of the same. But to take
this in pieces-1. In a word, are they converted? God finds them
first, for, saith He, "I am found of them that sought Me not" (Isa
65:1). 2. Have they pardon of sin? They have that also freely,-"I
will heal their backsliding, I will love them freely" (Hosea 14:4).
3. Have they faith? It is the gift of God in Christ Jesus, and He is
not only the Author, that is, the beginner thereof, but He doth also
perfect the same (Heb 12:2). 4. Have they hope? It is God that is
the first cause thereof-"Remember the word unto Thy servant, upon
which Thou hast caused me to hope" (Psa 119:49). 5. Have they
righteousness? It is the free gift of God (Rom 5:17). Have they
strength to do the work of God in their generations, or any other
thing that God would have them do? That also is a free gift from the
Lord, for without Him we neither do nor can do anything (John 15:5).
7. Have we comfort, or consolation? We have it not for what we have
done, but from God through Christ; for He is the God of all comforts
and consolation (2 Cor 1:3-7). 8. Have we the Spirit, or the fruits
thereof? it is the gift of the Father-"how much more shall your
heavenly Father give the Holy Spirit to them that ask Him (Luke
11:13)? "Thou has wrought all our works in us" (Isa 26:12).
And so, I say, whether it be victory over
sin, death, Hell, or the devil, it is given us by the victory of
Christ-"But thanks be to God which giveth us the victory through our
Lord Jesus Christ" (1 Cor 15:57; Rom 7:24,25). Heaven and glory it
is also the gift of Him who giveth us richly all things to enjoy
(Matt 25:34).
So that these things, if they be duly and
soberly considered, will give satisfaction in this thing. I might
have added many more for the clearing of these things; as 1. When
God came to man to convert him, He found him a dead man (Eph 2:1,2).
He found him an enemy to God, Christ, and the salvation of his own
soul; He found him wallowing in all manner of wickedness; He found
him taking pleasure therein; with all delight and greediness. 2. He
was fain to quicken him by putting His Spirit into him, and to
translate him by the mighty operation thereof. He was fain to reveal
Christ Jesus unto him, man being altogether senseless and ignorant
of this blessed Jesus (Matt 11:25,27; 1 Cor 2:7-10). 4. He was fain
to break the snare of the devil, and to let poor man, poor bound and
fettered man, out of the chains of the enemy.
[THE NEW COVENANT FREE AND UNCHANGEABLE, WHO
ARE UNDER IT, AND THEIR PRIVILEGES.]
Now we are to proceed, and the things that we
are to treat upon in the second place are these-First. [Besides the
reasons already given.] Why is it a free and unchangeable grace?
SECOND. Who they are that are actually brought into His free and
unchangeable Covenant of Grace, and how they are brought in? THIRD.
What are the privileges of those that are actually brought into this
free and glorious grace of the glorious God of Heaven and glory?
[THE NEW COVENANT FREE AND UNCHANGEABLE BECAUSE MADE WITH CHRIST.]
FIRST. WHY IT IS A FREE AND UNCHANGEABLE
GRACE.
And for the opening of this we must consider,
first, How and through Whom this grace doth come to be, first, free
to us, and, secondly, unchangeable? This grace is free to us through
conditions in Another-that is, by way of covenant or bargain; for
this grace comes by way of covenant or bargain to us, yet made with
Another for us.
First. That it comes by way of covenant,
contract, or bargain, though not personally with us, be pleased to
consider these Scriptures, where it is said, "I have made a covenant
with My Chosen: I have sworn unto David [The word David in this
place signifieth Christ, as also in these Scriptures-(Eze 34:23,24;
37:24,25).] My servant" (Psa 89:3). "And as for Thee also, by the
blood of Thy covenant," speaking of Christ, "I have sent forth Thy
prisoners out of the pit wherein is no water," (Zech 9:9-11). Again;
"Ye have sold yourselves for nought; and ye shall be redeemed
without money" (Isa 52:3). Blessed be the Lord," therefore, saith
Zacharias, "for He hath visited and" also "redeemed His people, and
hath raised up an horn of salvation for us in the house of His
servant David; as He spake by the mouth of His holy Prophets, which
have been since the world began; that we should be saved from our
enemies, and from the hands of all that hate us; to perform the
mercy promised to our fathers, and to remember His holy covenant,"
or bargain (Luke 1:68-72). [I might give you more Scriptures; but
pray consider the second thing.] And if any should be offended with
the plainness of these words, as some poor souls may be through
ignorance, let them be pleased to read soberly Isaiah 49:1-12, and
there they may see that it runs as plain a bargain as if two would
be making of a bargain between themselves, and concluding upon
several conditions on both sides. But more of this hereafter. Now,
Second. This covenant, I say, was made with
One, not with many, and also confirmed in the conditions of it with
One, not with several. First, that the covenant was made with One
(Gal 3:16). "Now to Abraham and his Seed were the promises made. He
saith not, And to seeds, as of many; but as of one, And to thy Seed,
which is Christ" (Verse 17). "And this, I say, that the covenant
that was confirmed before of God, in Christ," etc. The covenant was
made with the Seed of Abraham; not the seeds, but the Seed, which is
the Lord Jesus Christ, our Head and Undertaker in the things
concerning the covenant.
Third. The condition was made with One, and
also accomplished by Him alone, and not by several; yet in the
nature, and for the everlasting deliverance of many; even by one man
Jesus Christ, as it is clear from Romans 5:15-17, etc., and in
Zechariah 9:11, the Lord saith to Christ, "And as for Thee"-mark,
"As for Thee also, by the blood of Thy covenant," or as for Thee
whose covenant was by blood; that is, the condition of the covenant
was, that Thou shouldst spill Thy blood; which having been done in
the account of God, saith He, I according to My condition have let
go the prisoners, or sent them "out of the pit wherein is no water."
Those Scriptures in Galatians 3:16,17 that are above cited, are
notably to our purpose; Verse 16 saith it was made with Christ,
Verse 17 saith it was also confirmed in or with God in Him. Pray
read with understanding. "Now," saith Paul, "the promises were not
made unto seeds, as of many; but as of one, And to thy Seed, which
is Christ." . . . . "The law, which was four hundred and thirty
years after, cannot disannul, that it should make the promise of
none effect." Not that the covenant was made with Abraham and Christ
together, as two persons that were the undertakers of the same; the
promise was made with, or to, Abraham afterwards; but the covenant
with Christ before.
[Neither Abraham nor the fathers able to
undertake the accomplishment of this covenant.]
Further, that the covenant was not personally
made with Abraham, no, nor with any of the fathers, neither so as
that they were the persons that should stand engaged to be the
accomplishers thereof, either in whole or in part; which is very
clear.
First. Because this covenant was not made
with God and the creature; not with another poor Adam, that only
stood upon the strength of natural abilities; but this covenant was
made with the second Person, with the Eternal Word of God; with Him
that was everyways as holy, as pure, as infinite, as powerful, and
as everlasting as God (Prov 8:22-31; Isa 9:6; Zech 13:7; Phil 2:6;
Heb 1; Rev 1:11-17; 22:13,17).
Second. This covenant or bargain was made in
deed and in truth before man was in being. O! God thought of the
salvation of man before there was any transgression of man; for
then, I say, and not since then, was the Covenant of Grace made with
the Undertaker thereof; for all the other sayings are to show unto
us that glorious plot and contrivance that was concluded on before
time between the Father and the Son, which may very well be
concluded on for a truth from the Word of God, if you consider, 1.
That the Scripture doth declare that the price was agreed on by the
Son before time; 2. The promise was made to Him by the Father that
He should have His bargain before time; 3. The choice, and who they
were that should be saved was made before time, even before the
world began.
1. For the first, That the price was agreed
upon before the world began. Consider the word which speaketh of the
price that was paid for sinners, even the precious blood of Christ;
it saith of Him, "Who verily was foreordained before the foundation
of the world, but was manifest in these last times for you, who by
Him do believe," etc. (1 Peter 1:20,21). Mark, it was foreordained
or concluded on between the Father and the Son before the world
began.
2. The promise from God to the Son was also
made in the same manner, as it is clear where the Apostle saith with
comfort to his soul, that he had "hope of eternal life, which God,
that cannot lie, promised before the world began," (Titus 1:2) which
could be to none but the Mediator of the new covenant, because there
was none else to whom it should be made but He.
3. The choice was also made then, even before
man had a being in this world, as it is evident where he saith,
"Blessed be the God and Father of our Lord Jesus Christ, who hath
blessed us with all spiritual blessings in heavenly places IN
Christ: according as He hath chosen us in Him before the foundation
of the world, that we should be holy and without blame before Him in
love" (Eph 1:3,4). [Did I think this would meet with any opposition,
I should be in this more large.] Nay, did I look upon it here to be
necessary, I should show you very largely and clearly that God did
not only make the covenant with Christ before the world began, and
the conditions thereof, but I could also show you that the very
saints' qualifications, as part of the covenant, was then concluded
on by the Father and the Son according to these Scriptures, which,
it may be, I may touch upon further anon (Eph 1:3,4; 2:10; Rom
8:28). But,
Third. This covenant was not made with any of
the fathers, neither in whole nor in part, as the undertakers
thereof; for then it must be also concluded that they are
co-partners with Christ in our salvation, and so that Christ is not
Mediator alone; but this would be blasphemy for any once to surmise.
And therefore, by the way, when thou readest of the new covenant in
Scripture as though it was made with Adam, Noah, Abraham, or David,
thou art to consider thus with thyself-1. That God spake to them in
such a way for to show or signify unto us how He did make the
covenant that He did make with Christ before the world began, they
being types of Him. 2. That He thereby might let them understand
that He was the same then as He is now, and now as He was then; and
that then it was resolved on between His Son and HIM, that in after
ages His Son should in their natures, from their loins, and for
their sins, be born of a woman, hanged on the Cross, etc., for them:
for all along you may see that when He speaketh to them of the new
covenant, He mentions their seed-their seed-still aiming at Christ;
Christ, the Seed of the woman, was to break the serpent's head (Gen
3:15; 17; Psa 89:36). Now to Abraham and his Seed was the promise
made; his Seed shall endure for ever, and His throne as the days of
Heaven, etc.; still pointing at Christ. And, 3. To stir up their
faith and expectations to be constant unto the end in waiting for
that which He and His Son had concluded on before time, and what He
had since the conclusion declared unto the world by the Prophets. 4.
It appeareth that the heart of God was much delighted therein also,
as is evident, in that He was always in every age declaring of that
unto them which before He had prepared for them. O this good God of
Heaven!
Objection: But you will say, perhaps, the
Scriptures say plainly that the new covenant was and is made with
believers, saying, "The days come, saith the Lord, that I will make
a new covenant with the house of Israel, and with the house of
Judah; not according to the covenant that I made with their fathers
in the day when I led them out of the land of Egypt," etc. (Heb
8:8-10). So that it doth not run with Christ alone, but with
believers also-I will make a new covenant with the house of Israel
and Judah, etc. (Jer 31:33).
Answer first: It cannot be meant that the new
covenant was made with Christ, and the house of Israel and Judah as
the undertakers thereof; for so it was made with Christ alone, which
is clear, in that it was made long before the house of Israel and
Judah had a being, as I showed before. But,
Answer second: These words here are spoken,
first, to show rather the end of the ceremonies than the beginning
or rise of the new covenant. Mind a little; the Apostle is labouring
to beat the Jews, to whom he wrote this Epistle, off of the
ceremonies of the law, of the priests, altar, offerings, temple,
etc., and to bring them to the right understanding of the thing and
things that they held forth, which were to come, and to put an end
to those. If you do but understand the Epistle to the Hebrews, it is
a discourse that showeth that the Son of God being come, there is an
end put to the ceremonies; for they were to continue so long and no
longer-"It," saith the Apostle, "stood in meats and drinks, and
divers washings, and carnal ordinances imposed on them until the
time of reformation"; that is, until Christ did come. "But Christ
being come an high priest of good things to come," etc., puts an end
to the things and ordinances of the Levitical priesthood. Read the
7th, 8th, 9th, and 10th Chapters of Hebrews, and you will find this
true. So, then, when He saith, "The days come in which I make a new
covenant," it is rather to be meant a changing of the
administration, taking away the type, the shadow, the ceremonies
from the house of Israel and Judah, and relieving by the birth of
Christ, and the death of Christ, and the offering of the body of Him
whom the shadows and types did point out to be indeed He whom God
the Father had given for a ransom by covenant for the souls of the
saints; and also to manifest the truth of that covenant which was
made between the Father and the Son before the world began; for
though the new covenant was made before the world began, and also
every one in all ages was saved by the virtue of that covenant, yet
that covenant was never so clearly made manifest as at the coming,
death, and resurrection of Christ; and therefore, saith the
Scripture, "He hath brought life and immortality to light through
the Gospel." "Who hath saved us, and called us with an holy calling"
not according to" the "works" of righteousness which we have done,
"but according to His own purpose and grace, which was given us in
Christ Jesus before the world began," there is the covenant, but it
was "made MANIFEST by the APPEARING of our Saviour Jesus Christ, who
hath abolished death, and brought life and immortality to LIGHT
through the Gospel" (2 Tim 1:9,10). Therefore, I say, these words
are therefore to discover that the time was come to change the
dispensation, to take away the type, and bring in the substance, and
so manifesting that more clearly which before lay hid in dark
sayings and figures. And this is usual with God to speak in this
manner.
Again; if at any time you do find in
Scripture that the Covenant of Works is spoken of as the first
covenant that was manifested, and so before the second covenant, yet
you must understand that it was so only as to manifestation-that is,
it was first given to man, yet not made before that which was made
with Christ; and indeed it was requisite that it should be given or
made known first, that thereby there might be a way made for the
second, by its discovering of sin, and the sad state that man was in
after the Fall by reason of that. And again, that the other might be
made the more welcome to the sons of men. Yet the second Adam was
before the first, and also the second covenant before the first.
This is a riddle]. And in this did Christ in time most gloriously
answer Adam, who was the figure of Christ, as well as of other
things. Romans 5. For, Was the first covenant made with the first
Adam? so was the second covenant made with the second; for these are
and were the two great public persons, or representators of the
whole world, as to the first and second covenants; and therefore you
find God speaking on this wise in Scripture concerning the new
covenant-"My covenant shall stand fast with HIM." "My mercy will I
keep for HIM for evermore," saith God: "My covenant shall stand fast
with HIM" (Psa 89:28,34,35); this HIM is Christ, if you compare this
with Luke 1:32, "My covenant will I not break"-namely, that which
was made with HIM-"nor alter the thing that is gone out of My mouth.
Once I have sworn by My holiness that I will not lie unto David,"
[David here is to be understood Christ.] to whom this was spoken
figuratively in the Person of Christ; for that was God's usual way
to speak of the glorious things of the Gospel in the time of the
Law, as I said before.
[THE CONDITIONS OF THE NEW COVENANT.]
The conditions also were concluded on and
agreed to be fulfilled by Him: as it is clear, if you understand His
saying in the 12th of John, at the 27th verse, where He foretelleth
His death, and saith, "Now is My soul troubled; and what shall I
say? Father, save Me from this hour: but for this cause came I" into
the world "unto this hour"; as if He had said, My business is now
not to shrink from My sufferings that are coming upon Me; for these
are the things that are a great part of the conditions contracted in
the covenant which stands between My Father and Me; therefore I
shall not pray that this might be absolutely removed from Me; For,
"for this cause came I" into the world; even this was the very terms
of the covenant. By this you may see, "we are under grace."
Now in a covenant there are these three
things to be considered-First. What it is that is covenanted for.
Second. The conditions upon which the persons who are concerned in
it do agree. Third. If the conditions on both sides be not according
to the agreement fulfilled, then the covenant standeth not, but is
made void. And this new covenant in these particulars is very
exactly fulfilled and made out in Christ.
First. The thing or things covenanted for was
the salvation of man, but made good in Christ-"The Son of Man is
come to seek and to save that which was lost. The Son of Man did not
come to destroy men's lives, but to save them. I gave My life a
ransom for many. And this is the will," or covenant, "of Him that
sent Me, that of all which He hath given Me, I should lose nothing,
but should raise it up again at the last day" (John 6:39).
Second. As touching the conditions agreed on,
they ran thus-1. On the Mediator's side, that He should come into
the world; and then on the Father's side, that He should give Him a
body. This was one of the glorious conditions between the Father and
Christ; "Wherefore, when He cometh into the world, He saith,
Sacrifice and offering Thou wouldest not"-that is, the old covenant
must not stand, but give way to another sacrifice which Thou hast
prepared, which is the giving up My Manhood to the strokes of Thy
justice-"for a body Thou hast prepared Me" (Heb 10:5). This doth
prove us under grace.
2. On the Mediator's side, that He should be
put to death; and on God the Father's side, that He should raise Him
up again; this was concluded on also to be done between God the
Father and His Son Jesus Christ. On Christ's side, that He should
die to give the justice of His Father satisfaction, and so to take
away the curse that was due to us, wretched sinners, by reason of
our transgressions; and that God His Father, being every ways fully
and completely satisfied, should by His mighty power revive and
raise Him up again. He hath "brought again-our Lord Jesus"; that is,
from death to life, through the virtue or effectual satisfaction
that He received from the blood that was shed according to the terms
"of the Everlasting Covenant" (Heb 13:20).
3. On the Mediator's side, that He should be
made a curse; and on the Father's side, that through Him sinners
should be inheritors of the blessing. What wonderful love doth there
appear by this in the heart of our Lord Jesus, in suffering such
things for our poor bodies and souls? (Gal 3:13,14). This is grace.
4. That on the Mediator's side there should
be by Him a victory over Hell, death, and the devil, and the curse
of the Law; and on the Father's side, that these should be
communicated to sinners, and they set at liberty thereby-"Turn you
to the stronghold," saith God, "ye prisoners of hope; even today do
I declare that I will render double unto thee" (Zech 9:12). Why so?
It is because of the blood of My Son's covenant (Verse 11); which
made Paul, though sensible of a body of death, and of the sting that
death did strike into the souls of all those that are found in their
sins, bold to say, "O death! where is thy sting? O grave! where is
thy victory? The sting of death is sin." That is true, and the
terrible Law of God doth aggravate and set it home with
insupportable torment and pain. But shall I be daunted at this? No,
"I thank my God through Jesus Christ He hath given me this victory."
So that now, though I be a sinner in myself, yet I can, by believing
in Jesus Christ, the Mediator of this new covenant, triumph over the
devil, sin, death, and Hell; and say, Do not fear, my soul, seeing
the victory is obtained over all my enemies through my Lord Jesus
Christ (1 Cor 15:55-57). This is the way to prove ourselves under
grace.
5. That on the Mediator's side He should by
thus doing bring in everlasting righteousness for saints (Dan 9:24);
and that the Father for this should give them an everlasting kingdom
(1 Peter 1:3-5; Eph 1:4; 2 Tim 4:18; Luke 22:28,29). But,
Third. [How the conditions are fulfilled]. In
the next place, this was not all-that is, the Covenant of Grace,
with the conditions thereof, was not only concluded on by both
parties to be done, but Jesus Christ [Christ is put into office by
the Father, to do all things contained in the new covenant]. must be
authorized to do what was concluded on touching this covenant by way
of office. I shall therefore speak a word or two also touching the
offices, at least, some of them, that Christ Jesus did and doth
still execute as the Mediator of the new covenant, which also were
typed out in the Levitical law; for this is the way to prove that we
are not under the law, but under grace. And,
[CHRIST IS THE SURETY OF THE NEW COVENANT.]
FIRST. His first office, after the covenant
was made and concluded upon, was that Jesus should become bound as a
Surety, [His Suretyship]. and stand engaged upon oath to see that
all the conditions of the covenant that were concluded on between
Him and His Father should, according to the agreement, be
accomplished by Him; and that after that, He should be the Messenger
from God to the world to declare the mind of God touching the tenor
and nature of both the covenants, especially of the new one. The
Scripture saith, that Jesus Christ was not only made a priest by an
oath, but also a Surety, or bondsman, as in Hebrews 7:21, 22. In the
21st Verse he speaketh of the priesthood of Christ, that it was with
an oath; and saith, in the 22nd Verse, "By so much" also "was Jesus
made a Surety of a better testament," or covenant.
Now the covenant was not only made on Jesus
Christ's side with an oath, but also on God the Father's side, that
it might be for the better ground of establishment to all those that
are, or are to be, the children of the promise. Methinks it is
wonderful to consider that the God and Father of our souls, by Jesus
Christ, should be so bent upon the salvation of sinners, that He
would covenant with His Son Jesus for the security of them, and also
that there should pass an oath on both sides for the confirmation of
Their resolution to do good. As if the Lord had said, My Son, Thou
and I have here made a covenant, that I on My part should do thus
and thus, and that Thou on Thy part shouldst do so and so. Now that
We may give these souls the best ground of comfort that may be,
there shall pass an oath on both sides, that Our children may see
that We do indeed love them. "Wherein God, willing more abundantly
to show unto the heirs of promise the immutability of His counsel,"
in making of the covenant, "confirmed it by an oath: that we might
have a strong consolation, who have fled for refuge to lay hold upon
the hope set before us" (Heb 6:17,18; 7:21). Mark, the 6th Chapter
saith, God confirmed His part by an oath; and the 7th saith, Christ
was made or set on His office also by an oath. Again, "Once," saith
God, "have I sworn by My holiness, that I will not lie unto David,"
"nor alter the thing that is gone out of My mouth," (Psa 89:34,35)
as was before cited.
Herein you may see that God and Christ were
in good earnest about the salvation of sinners; for as soon as ever
the covenant was made, the next thing was, who should be bound to
see all those things fulfilled which were conditioned on between the
Father and the Son: the angels, they could have no hands in it; the
world could not do it; the devils had rather see them damned than
they would wish them the least good; thus Christ looked, and there
was none to help; though the burden lay never so heavy upon His
shoulder, He must bear it Himself; for there was none besides
Himself to uphold, or so much as to step in to be bound, to see the
conditions, before mentioned, fulfilled neither in whole nor in part
(Isa 63:1-7). So that He must not be only He with whom the covenant
was made, but He must also become the bondsman or surety thereof,
and so stand bound to see that all and every particular thing
conditioned for should be, both in manner, and matter, at the time
and place, according to the agreement, duly and orderly fulfilled.
Is not this grace?
Now as touching the nature of a surety and
his work, in some things it is well known to most men; therefore I
shall be very brief upon it.
First. You know a surety is at the bargain's
making; and so was Christ-"Then was I beside Him" (Prov 8:30).
Second. A surety must consent to the terms of
the agreement, or covenant; and so did Christ Jesus. Now that which
He did engage should be done for sinners, according to the terms of
the covenant; it was this-1. That there should be a complete
satisfaction given to God for the sins of the world; for that was
one great thing that was agreed upon when the covenant was made (Heb
10:5,17). 2. That Jesus Christ should, as aforesaid, bring in an
everlasting righteousness to clothe the saints (His body) withal
(Dan 9:24,25). Here is grace. 3. That He should take in charge to
see all those forthcoming without spot or wrinkle at the day of His
glorious appearing from Heaven in judgment, and to quit them before
the Judgment-seat. Again,
Third. In the work of a surety there is
required by the creditor that the surety should stand to what he is
bound; and on the surety's side there is a consenting thereunto. 1.
The creditor looks, that in case the debtor proves a bankrupt, that
then the surety should engage the payment. Is not this grace?
[However it is in other engagements, it is thus in this]. 2. The
creditor looks that the surety should be an able man. Now our Surety
was, and is, in this case, every way suitable; for He is heir of all
things. 3. The creditor appoints the day, and also looks that the
covenant should be kept, and the debt paid, according to the time
appointed; and it is required of sureties, as well as stewards, that
they be found faithful-namely, to pay the debt according to the
bargain; and therefore it is said, "When the fullness of the time
was come, God sent forth His Son-made under the law, to redeem them
that were under the law," (Gal 4:4,5). Thus comes grace to saints.
4. The creditor looks that his money should be brought into his
house, to his own habitation. Jesus, our Surety, in this also is
faithful; for by His own blood, which was the payment, He is entered
into the holy place, even into Heaven itself, which is God's
dwelling-place, to render the value and price that was agreed upon
for the salvation of sinners. But I shall speak more of this in
another head, therefore I pass it. Again,
Fourth. If the surety stands bound, the
debtor is at liberty; and if the law do issue out any process to
take any, it will be the surety. [Though the debtor, together with
the surety, is liable to pay the debt by the law of man, yet Christ
our Surety only by the Covenant of Grace]. And, O! how wonderfully
true was this accomplished in that, when Christ our Surety came down
from Heaven, God's Law did so seize upon the Lord Jesus, and so
cruelly handle Him, and so exact upon Him, that it would never let
Him alone until it had accused Him and condemned Him, executed Him,
and screwed His very heart's blood out of His precious heart and
side; nay, and more than this too, as I shall show hereafter. But,
[CHRIST THE MESSENGER OF THE NEW COVENANT.]
SECOND. [His second office]. After that Jesus
Christ had stood bound, and was become our Surety in things
pertaining to this covenant, His next office was to be the Messenger
of God touching His mind and the tenor of the covenant unto the poor
world; and this did the Prophet foresee long before, when he saith,
"Behold, I will send My messenger, and he shall prepare the way
before Me"; speaking of John the Baptist. "And he shall prepare the
way before Me." And then He speaketh of Christ to the people,
saying, "And the Lord whom ye seek shall suddenly come to His
temple." Who is He? Even the Messenger of the covenant, whom ye
delight in," that is Christ. "Behold, He shall come, saith the LORD
of Hosts" (Mal 3:1).
Now the covenant being made before between
the Father and the Son, and Jesus Christ becoming bound to see all
the conditions fulfilled, this being done, He could come down from
Heaven to earth, to declare to the world what God the Father and HE
had concluded on before, and what was the mind of the Father towards
the world concerning the salvation of their souls; and indeed, who
could better come on such an errand than He that stood by when the
covenant was made? than He that shook hands with the Father in
making of the covenant? than He that was become a Surety in the
behalf of poor sinners, according to the terms of the covenant.
Now, you know, a messenger commonly when he
cometh, doth bring some errand to them to whom he is sent, either of
what is done for them, or what they would have them whom they send
unto do for them, or such like. Now what a glorious message was that
which our Lord Jesus Christ came down from Heaven withal to declare
unto poor sinners, and that from God His Father? I say, how glorious
was it; and how sweet is it to you that have seen yourselves lost by
nature? and it will also appear a glorious one to you who are a
seeking after Jesus Christ, if you do but consider these following
things about what He was sent-
First. Jesus Christ was sent from Heaven to
declare unto the world from God the Father that He was wonderfully
filled with love to poor sinners. First, in that He would forgive
their sins. Secondly, in that He would save their souls. Thirdly in
that He would make them heirs of His glory. "For God so loved the
world, that He gave His only begotten Son.-For God sent not His Son
into the world to condemn the world, but that the world through Him
might be saved" (John 3:16,17).
Second. God sent Jesus Christ to tell the
poor world how that He would do this for poor sinners, and yet be
just, and yet do His justice no wrong; and that was to be done by
Jesus Christ's dying of a cursed death in the room of poor sinners,
to satisfy justice, and make way for mercy; to take away the
stumbling-blocks, and set open Heaven's gates; to overcome Satan,
and break off from sinners his chains (Luke 4:18) to set open the
prison doors, and to let the prisoners go free (Isa 61:1-3). And
this was the message that Christ was to deliver to the world by
commandment from His Father; and this did He tell us when He came of
His errand, where he saith, "I lay down My life for the sheep-no man
taketh it from Me, but I lay it down of Myself. I have power to lay
it down, and to take it again. This commandment have I received of
My Father" (John 10:15-18). Even this commandment hath My Father
given Me, that I should both do this thing and also tell it unto
you.
Third. He was not only sent as a Messenger to
declare this His father's love, but also how dearly He himself loved
sinners, what a heart He had to do them good, where He saith, "All
that the Father giveth Me shall come to Me"; and let me tell you, MY
heart too, saith Christ-"Him that cometh to Me, I will in no wise
cast out" (John 6:37). As My Father is willing to give you unto Me,
even so am I as willing to receive you. As My Father is willing to
give you Heaven, so am I willing to make you fit for it, by washing
you with My own blood; I lay down My life that you might have life;
and this I was sent to tell you of My Father.
Fourth. His message was further; He came to
tell them how and which way they should come to enjoy these glorious
benefits; also by laying down motives to stir them up to accept of
the benefits. The way is laid down in John 3:14,15, where Christ
saith, "As Moses lifted up the serpent in the wilderness, even so
must the Son of Man be lifted up," or caused to be hanged on the
Cross, and die the death-"that whosoever believeth in Him should not
perish but have everlasting life." The way, therefore, that thou
shalt have the benefit and comfort of that which My Father and I
have covenanted for, for thee, I am come down from Heaven to earth
on purpose to give thee intelligence, and to certify thee of it.
Know, therefore, that as I have been born of a woman, and I have
taken this Body upon Me, it is on purpose that I might offer it up
upon the Cross a sacrifice to God, to give Him satisfaction for thy
sins, that His mercy may be extended to thy soul, without any wrong
done to justice; and this thou art to believe, and not in the notion
but from thy very whole soul. Now the motives are many. 1. If they
do not leave their sins, and come to Jesus Christ, that their sins
may be washed away by His blood, they are sure to be damned in Hell;
for the law hath condemned them already (John 3:18,19). 2. But if
they do come, they shall have the bosom of Christ to lie in, the
Kingdom of Heaven to dwell in, the angels and saints for their
companions, shall shine there like the sun, shall be there for ever,
shall sit upon the thrones of judgment, etc. Here is grace.
Methinks if I had but the time to speak fully to all things that I could speak to from these two heavenly truths, and to make application thereof, surely, with the blessing of God, I think it might persuade some vile and abominable wretch to lay down his arms that he hath taken up in defiance against God, and is marching Hellwards, post-haste with the devil; I say, methinks it should stop them, and make them willing to look back and accept of salvation for their poor condemned souls, before God's eternal vengeance is executed upon them. O, therefore! you that are upon this march, I beseech you consider a little. What! shall Christ become a drudge for you; and will you be drudges for the devil? Shall Christ covenant with God for the salvation of sinners; and shall sinners covenant with Hell, death, and the devil for the damnation of their souls? Shall Christ come down from Heaven to earth to declare this to sinners; and shall sinners stop their ears against these good tidings? Will you not hear the errand of Christ, although He telleth you tidings of peace and salvation? How, if He had come, having taken a commandment from His Father to damn you, and to send you to the devils in Hell? Sinner, hear His message; He speaketh no harm, His words are Eternal Life; all men that give ear unto them, they have eternal advantage by them; advantage, I say, that never hath an end.
Besides, do but consider these two things, it
is like they have some sway upon thy soul-1. When He came on His
message, He came with tears in His eyes, and did even weepingly
tender the terms of reconciliation to them; I say, with tears in his
eyes. And when He came near the city-i.e., with His message of
peace-beholding the hardness of their hearts, He wept over it, and
took up a lamentation over it; because He saw they rejected His
mercy, which was tidings of peace; I say, wilt thou then slight a
weeping Jesus, One that so loveth thy soul that, rather than He will
lose thee, He will with tears persuade with thee? 2. Not only so,
but also when He came, He came all on a gore blood to proffer mercy
to thee, to show thee still how dearly He did love thee; as if He
had said, Sinner, here is mercy for thee; but behold My bloody
sweat, My bloody wounds, My cursed death; behold and see what danger
I have gone through to come unto thy soul; I am come indeed unto
thee, and do bring thee tidings of salvation, but it cost Me My
heart's blood before I could come at thee, to give thee the fruits
of My everlasting love. But more of this anon.
Thus have I spoken something concerning
Christ's being the Messenger of the new covenant; but because I am
not willing to cut too short of what shall come after, I shall pass
by these things not half touched, and come to the other which I
promised even now; which was to show you, that as there were
Levitical ceremonies in or belonging to the first covenant, so these
types, or Levitical ceremonies, did represent the glorious things of
the new covenant. In those ceremonies you read of a sacrifice, of a
priest to offer up the sacrifice, the place where, and the manner
how, he was to offer it; of which I shall speak something.
[CHRIST THE SACRIFICE OF THE NEW COVENANT.]
THIRD. [A third office of Christ, in
reference to the new covenant, was His becoming the sacrifice]. As
touching the sacrifice; you find that it was not to be offered up of
all kind of beasts, as of lions, bears, wolves, tigers, dragons,
serpents, or such like; to signify, that not all kind of creatures
that had sinned, as devils, the fallen angels, should be saved; but
the sacrifice was to be taken out of some kind of beasts and birds,
to signify, that some of God's creatures that had sinned He would be
pleased to reconcile them to Himself again; as poor fallen man and
woman, those miserable creatures, God, the God of Heaven, had a good
look for after their fall; but not for the cruel devils, though more
noble creatures by creation than we. Here is grace.
Now though these sacrifices were offered, yet
they were not offered to the end they should make the comers to, or
offerers thereof, perfect; but the things were to represent to the
world what God had in after ages for to do, which was even the
salvation of His creatures by that offering of the body of Jesus
Christ, of which these were a shadow and a type for the
accomplishing of the second covenant. For Christ was by covenant to
offer a sacrifice, and that an effectual one too, if He intended the
salvation of sinners-"A body hast Thou prepared for Me; I am come to
do Thy will" (Heb 10:5). I shall therefore show you, First. What was
expected by God in the sacrifice in the type, and then show you how
it was answered in the antitype. Second. I shall show you the manner
of the offering of the type, and so answerable thereto to show you
the fitness of the sacrifice of the body of Christ, by way of
answering some questions.
First. For the first of these, [What was
expected by God in the sacrifice in the type, and how answered in
the antitype]-1. God did expect that sacrifice which He Himself had
appointed, and not another, to signify, that none would serve His
turn but the body and soul of His appointed Christ, the Mediator of
the new covenant (John 1:29). 2. This sacrifice must not be lame nor
deformed; it must have no scar, spot, or blemish; to signify, that
Jesus Christ was to be a complete sacrifice by covenant (1 Peter
1:19). 3. This sacrifice was to be taken out of the flock or herd;
to signify, that Jesus Christ was to come out of the race of
mankind, according to covenant (Heb 10:5). But,
Second. As to the manner of it [The offering
of the types, and so answerable thereto, to show the fitness of the
sacrifice of the body of Christ]-1. The sacrifice, before it was
offered, was to have all the sins of the children of Israel
confessed over it; to signify, that Jesus Christ must bear the sins
of all His children by covenant (Isa 53:4-7; 1 Peter 2:24). "As for
Thee also, by the blood of Thy covenant," in His own body on the
tree (Zech 9:11). 2. It must be had to the place appointed-namely,
without the camp of Israel; to signify, that Jesus Christ must be
led to the Mount Calvary (Luke 23:33). 3. The sacrifice was to be
killed there; to signify, that Jesus Christ must and did suffer
without the city of Jerusalem for our salvation. 4. The sacrifice
must not only have its life taken away, but also some of its flesh
burned upon the altar; to signify, that Jesus Christ was not only to
die a natural death, but also that He should undergo the pains and
torments of the damned in Hell. 5. Sometimes there must be a living
offering and a dead offering, as the goat that was killed, and the
scape-goat, the dead bird and the living bird, to signify, that
Jesus Christ must die, and come to life again (Lev 19:4-6). 6. The
goat that was to die was to be the sin-offering; that is, to be
offered as the rest of the sin-offerings, to make an atonement as a
type; and the other goat was to have all the sins of the children of
Israel confessed over him, and then let go into the wilderness,
never to be catched again (Lev 16:7-22). To signify, that Christ's
death was to make satisfaction for sin, and His coming to life again
was to bring in everlasting justification from the power, curse, and
destroying nature of sin (Rom 4:25). 7. The scape-goat was to be
carried by a fit man into the wilderness; to signify that Jesus
Christ should both be fit and able to carry our sins quite a way
from us, so as they should never be laid to our charge again. Here
is grace. 8. The sacrifices under the law, commonly part of them
must be eaten; to signify, that they that are saved should
spiritually feed on the body and blood of Jesus Christ, or else they
have no life by Him (Exo 12:5-11; John 6:51-53). 9. This sacrifice
must be eaten with unleavened bread; to signify, that they which
love their sins, that devilish leaven of wickedness, they do not
feed upon Jesus Christ. 8
Now of what hath been spoken this is the sum,
that there is a sacrifice under the new covenant, as there were
sacrifices under the old; and that this sacrifice did every way
answer that, or those; indeed, they did but suffer for sin in show,
but He in reality; they are the shadow, but He as the substance. O!
when Jesus Christ did come to make Himself a sacrifice, or to offer
Himself for sin, you may understand that our sins were indeed
charged to purpose upon Him. O! how they scarred his soul, how they
brake His body, insomuch that they made the blood run down His
blessed face and from His precious side; therefore thou must
understand these following things-First, that Jesus Christ by
covenant did die for sin. Secondly, that His death was not a mere
natural death, but a "cursed death," even such an one as men do
undergo from God for their sins, though He Himself had none, even
such a death as to endure the very pains and torments of Hell. O sad
pains and inexpressible torments that this our Sacrifice for sin
went under! The pains of His body were not all; no, but the pains of
His soul; for His soul was made an offering as well as His body, yet
all but one sacrifice (Isa 53). [As Christ did not suffer in His
body without suffering in soul, nor yet in soul without His
suffering in body; it was because not the body without the soul, but
both the body and soul of the saints should be for ever saved]. To
signify, that the suffering of Christ was not only a bodily
suffering, but a soul suffering; not only to suffer what man could
inflict upon Him, but also to suffer soul torments that none but God
can inflict, or suffer to be inflicted upon Him. O, the torments of
His soul! they were the torments indeed; His soul was that that felt
the wrath of God. "My soul," saith He, "is exceeding sorrowful, even
unto death" (Matt 26:38). "Now is My soul troubled, and what shall I
say?" (John 12:27). The rock was not so rent as was His precious
soul; there was not such a terrible darkness on the face of the
earth then as there was on His precious soul. O! the torments of
Hell and the eclipsings of the Divine smiles of God were both upon
Him at once; the devils assailing of Him, and God forsaking of Him,
and all at once! "My God, My God," saith He, "why hast Thou forsaken
Me?" (Matt 27:46). Now in my greatest extremity; now sin is laid
upon Me, the curse takes hold of Me, the pains of Hell are clasped
about Me, and Thou hast forsaken Me. O sad! Sinners, this was not
done in pretence, but in reality; not in show, but in very deed;
otherwise Christ had dissembled, and had not spoken the truth; but
the truth of it His bloody sweat declares, His mighty cries declare,
the things which and for what He suffered declare. Nay, I must say
thus much, that all the damned souls in Hell, with all their
damnations, did never yet feel that torment and pain that did this
blessed Jesus in a little time. Sinner, canst thou read that Jesus
Christ was made an offering for sin, and yet go in sin? Canst thou
hear that the load of thy sins did break the very heart of Christ,
and spill His precious blood? and canst thou find in thy heart to
labour to lay more sins upon His back? Canst thou hear that He
suffered the pains, the fiery flames of Hell, and canst thou find in
thy heart to add to His groans by slighting of His sufferings? O
hard-hearted wretch! how canst thou deal so unkindly with such a
sweet Lord Jesus?
Quest. But why did Christ offer Himself in
sacrifice?
Answ. That thou shouldst not be thrown to the
very devils.
Quest. But why did He spill His precious
blood?
Answ. That thou mightest enjoy the joys of
Heaven.
Quest. But why did He suffer the pains of
Hell?
Answ. That thou mightest not fry with the
devil and damned souls.
Quest. But could not we have been saved if
Christ had not died?
Answ. No; for without the shedding of blood
there is no remission; and besides, there was no death that could
satisfy God's justice but His, which is evident, because there was
none in a capacity to die, or that was able to answer an infinite
God by His so suffering but He. 9
Quest. But why did God let Him die?
Answ. He standing in the room of sinners, and
that in their names and natures, God's justice must fall upon Him;
for justice takes vengeance for sin wheresoever it finds it, though
it be on His dear Son. Nay, God favoured His Son no more, finding
our sins upon Him, than He would have favoured any of us; for,
should we have died? so did He. Should we have been made a curse? so
was He. Should we have undergone the pains of Hell? so did He.
Quest. But did He indeed suffer the torments
of Hell?
Answ. Yea, and that in such a horrible way
too, that it is unspeakable.
Quest. Could He not have suffered without His
so suffering? Would not His dying only of a natural death have
served the turn?
Answ. No, in nowise. [1]. The sins for which
He suffered called for the torments of Hell; the conditions upon
which He died did call for the torments of Hell; for Christ did not
die the death of a saint, but the death of a sinner, of a cursed and
damned sinner; because He stood in their room, the law to which He
was subjected called for the torments of Hell; the nature of God's
justice could not bate Him anything; the death which He was to
suffer had not lost its sting; all these being put together do
irresistibly declare unto us that He, as a sacrifice, did suffer the
torments of Hell (Gal 3:13). But, 2. Had He not died and suffered
the cursed death, the covenant had been made void, and His
Suretyship would have been forfeited, and, besides this, the world
damned in the flames of Hell-fire; therefore, His being a sacrifice
was one part of the covenant; for the terms of the covenant were
that He should spill His blood. O blessed Jesus! O blessed grace!
(Zech 9:10,11).
Quest. But why, then, is His death so
slighted by some?
Answ. Because they are enemies to Him, either
through ignorance or presumption; either for want of knowledge or
out of malice; for surely did they love or believe Him, they could
not choose but break and bleed at heart to consider and to think of
Him (Zech 12:10,11.
[CHRIST THE HIGH PRIEST OF THE NEW COVENANT.]
FOURTH, [A fourth office of Christ under the
new covenant is His priestly]. Thus, passing this, I shall now speak
something to Christ's priestly office. But, by the way, if any
should think that I do spin my thread too long in distinguishing His
priestly office from His being a sacrifice, the supposing that for
Christ to be a priest and a sacrifice is all one and the same thing;
and it may be it is, because they have not thought on this so well
as they should-namely, that as He was a sacrifice He was passive,
that is, led or had away as a lamb to His sufferings (Isaiah 53);
but as a priest He was active-that is, He did willingly and freely
give up His Body to be a sacrifice. "He hath given His life a ransom
for many." This consideration being with some weight and clearness
on my spirit, I was and am caused to lay them down in two particular
heads.
And therefore I would speak something to is
this, that as there were priests under the first covenant, so there
is a Priest under this, belonging to this new covenant, a High
Priest, the Chief Priest; as it is clear where it is said, We
"having a high priest over the house of God" (Heb 3:1; 5:5,10;
7:24-26; 8:1, 4; 10:21).
Now the things that I shall treat upon are
these-First, I shall show you the qualifications required of a
priest under the Law; Second, his office; and, Third, how Jesus
Christ did according to what was signified by those under the law; I
say, how He did answer the types, and where He went beyond them.
First, For his qualifications:-
1. They must be called thereto of God-"No man
taketh this honour unto himself, but he that is called of God, as
Aaron" (Heb 5:4). Now Aaron's being called of God to be a priest
signifies that Jesus Christ is a Priest of God's appointment, such
an one that God hath chosen, likes of, and hath set on work-"Called
of God an High Priest," etc. (Heb 5:10).
2. The priests under the law they must be
men, complete, not deformed-"Speak unto Aaron," saith God to Moses,
"saying, Whosoever he be of thy seed in their generations that hath
any blemish, let him not approach to offer the bread of his God. For
whatsoever man he be that hath a blemish, he shall not approach; a
blind man, or a lame, or he that hath a flat nose, or any thing
superfluous, or a man that is broken-footed, or broken-handed, or
crook-backt, or a dwarf, or that hath a blemish in his eye, or be
scurvy, or scabbed, or hath his stones broken; no man that hath a
blemish of the seed of Aaron the priest shall come nigh to offer the
offerings of the Lord made by fire; he that hath a blemish; he shall
not come nigh to offer the bread of his God" (Lev 21:17-21). What
doth all this signify but that, (1.) He must not be lame, to signify
he must not go haltingly about the work of our salvation. (2.) He
must not be blind, to signify that he must not go ignorantly to
work, but he must be quick of understanding in the things of God.
(3.) He must not be scabbed, to signify that the priest must not be
corrupt of filthy in his office. (4.) In a word, he must be every
way complete, to signify to us that Jesus Christ was to be, and is,
most complete and most perfect in things pertaining to God in
reference to His second covenant.
3. The priests under the law were not to be
hard-hearted, but pitiful and compassionate, willing and ready, with
abundance of bowels, to offer for the people, and to make an
atonement for them (Heb 5:1,2). To signify, that Jesus Christ should
be a tender-hearted High Priest, able and willing to sympathize and
be affected with the infirmities of others, to pray for them, to
offer up for them His precious blood; He must be such an One who can
have compassion on a company of poor ignorant souls, and on them
that are out of the way, to recover them, and to set them in safety
(Heb 4:15). And that He might thus do, He must be a man that had
experience of the disadvantages that infirmity and sin did bring
unto those poor creatures (Heb 2:17).
4. The high priests under the law were not to
be shy or squeamish in case there were any that had the plague or
leprosy, scab or blotches; but must look on them, go to them, and
offer for them (Lev 13), all which is to signify, that Jesus Christ
should not refuse to take notice of the several infirmities of the
poorest people, but to teach them, and to see that none of them be
lost by reason of their infirmity, for want of looking to or tending
of. 10
This privilege also have we under this second
covenant. This is the way to make grace shine.
5. The high priests under the law they were
to be anointed with very excellent oil, compounded by art (Exo 29:7;
30:30). To signify, that Jesus, the Great High Priest of this new
covenant, would be in a most eminent way anointed to His priestly
office by the Holy Spirit of the Lord.
6. The priest's food and livelihood in the
time of his ministry was to be the consecrated and holy things (Exo
29:33). To signify, that it is the very meat and drink of Jesus
Christ to do His priestly office, and to save and preserve His poor,
tempted, and afflicted saints. O what a new-covenant High Priest
have we!
7. The priests under the law were to be
washed with water (Exo 29:4). To signify, that Jesus Christ should
not go about the work of His priestly office with the filth of sin
upon Him, but was without sin to appear as our High Priest in the
presence of His Father, to execute His priestly office there for our
advantage-"For such a high priest became us, who is holy, harmless,
undefiled, separate from sinners, and made higher than the heavens"
(Heb 7:26).
8. The high priest under the law, before they
went into the holy place, there were to be clothed-with a curious
garment, a breastplate, and an ephod, and a robe, and a broidered
coat, a mitre, and a girdle, and they were to be made of gold, and
blue, and purple, and scarlet, and fine linen; and in his garment
and glorious ornaments there must be precious stones, and on those
stones there must be written the names of the children of Israel
(read Exodus 28), and all this was to signify what a glorious High
Priest Jesus Christ should be, and how in the righteousness of God
He should appear before God as our High Priest, to offer up the
sacrifice that was to be offered for our salvation to God His
Father. But I pass that.
Second, Now I shall speak to His office. The
office of the high priest in general was twofold. 1. To offer the
sacrifice without the camp. 2. To bring it within the veil-that is,
into the holiest of all, which did type out Heaven.
1. [First part of the high priest's office].
(1.) It was the office of the priest to offer the sacrifice; and so
did Jesus Christ; He did offer His own Body and Soul in sacrifice. I
say, HE did OFFER it, and not another, as it is written, "No man
taketh away My life, but I lay it down of Myself; I have power to
lay it down, and I have power to take it again" (John 10:17,18). And
again it is said, "When He," Jesus, "had offered up one sacrifice
for sin, for ever sat down on the right hand of God" (Heb 10:12).
(2.) The priests under the law must offer up the sacrifice that God
had appointed, and none else, a complete one without any blemish;
and so did our High Priest, where He saith, "Sacrifice and offering
Thou wouldest not, but a body has Thou prepared Me," and that I will
offer (Heb 10:5). (3.) The priest was to take of the ashes of the
sacrifice, and lay them in a clean place; and this signifies, that
the Body of Jesus, after it had been offered, should be laid into
Joseph's sepulchre, as in a clean place, where never any man before
was laid (Lev 6:11, compared with John 19:41,42).
2. [Second part of the high priest's office].
This being one part of his office, and when this was done, then in
the next place he was, (1.) To put on the glorious garment, when he
was to go into the holiest, and take of the blood, and carry it
thither, etc., he was to put on the holy garment which signifieth
the righteousness of Jesus Christ. (2.) He was in this holy garment,
which hath in it the stones, and in the stones the names of the
twelve tribes of the children of Israel, to appear in the holy
place. "And thou shalt take two onyx stones, and grave on them the
names of the children of Israel: six of their names on one stone,
and the other six names of the rest on the other stone, according to
their birth (Exo 28:9,10). And this was to signify, that Jesus
Christ was to enter into the holiest, then He was there to bear the
names of His elect in the tables of His heart before the Throne of
God and the Mercy-seat (Heb 12:23). (3.) With this he was to take of
the blood of the sacrifices, and carry it into the holiest of all,
which was a type of Heaven, and there was he to sprinkle the
mercy-seat; and this was to be done by the high priest only; to
signify, that none but Jesus Christ must have this office and
privilege, to be the people's High Priest to offer for them. "But
into the second went the high priest alone once every year, not
without blood, which he offered for himself, and for the errors of
the people" (Heb 9:7). (4.) He was there to make an atonement for
the people with the blood, sprinkling of it upon the mercy-seat; but
this must be done with much incense. "And Aaron shall bring the
bullock of the sin-offering which is for himself, and for his house,
and shall kill the bullock of the sin-offering which is for himself:
and he shall take a censor full of burning coals of fire from off
the altar before the Lord, and his hands full of sweet incense
beaten small, and bring it within the veil: and he shall put the
incense upon the fire before the Lord, that he cloud of the incense
may cover the mercy-seat that is upon the testimony, that he die
not: and he shall take of the blood of the bullock, and sprinkle it
with his finger upon the mercy-seat eastward, and before the
mercy-seat shall he sprinkle of the blood with his finger seven
times. Then shall he kill the goat of the sin-offering, that is for
the people, and bring his blood within the veil, and do with that
blood as he did with the blood of the bullock, and sprinkle it upon
the mercy-seat and before the mercy-seat." (Lev 16:11-15). Now this
was for the priest and the people; all which doth signify that Jesus
Christ was after His death to go into Heaven itself, of which this
holy place was a figure, and there to carry the sacrifice that He
offered upon the Cross into the presence of God, to obtain mercy for
the people in a way of justice (Heb 9). And in that he is said to
take his hands full of sweet incense, it signifies that Jesus Christ
was to offer up His sacrifice in the presence of His Father in a way
of intercession and prayers.
I might have branched these things out into
several particulars, but I would be brief. I say, therefore, the
office of the priest was to carry the blood into the holy place, and
there to present it before the mercy-seat, with his heart full of
intercessions for the people for whom he was a priest (Luke 1:8-11).
This is Jesus Christ's work now in the Kingdom of Glory, to plead
His own blood, the nature and virtue of it, with a perpetual
intercession to the God of Mercy on behalf of us poor miserable
sinners (Heb 7:25).
[Comfortable considerations from Christ's
intercession]. Now, in the intercession of this Jesus, which is part
of His priestly office, there are these things to be considered for
our comfort-
1. There is a pleading of the virtue of His
Blood for them that are already come in, that they may be kept from
the evils of heresies, delusions, temptations, pleasures, profits,
or anything of this world which may be too hard for them. "Father, I
pray not that Thou shouldest take them out of the world," saith
Christ, "but that Thou shouldest keep them from the evil" (John
17:15).
2. In case the devil should aspire up into
the presence of God, to accuse any of the poor saints, and to plead
their backslidings against them, as he will do if he can, then there
is Jesus, our Lord Jesus, ready in the Court of Heaven, at the right
hand of God, to plead the virtue of His Blood, not only for the
great and general satisfaction that He did give when He was on the
Cross, but also the virtue that is in it now for the cleansing and
fresh purging of His poor saints under their several temptations and
infirmities; as saith the Apostle, "For if when we were enemies we
were reconciled to God by the death of His Son, much more being
reconciled, we shall be saved by His life"-that is, by His
intercession (Rom 5:10).
3. The maintaining of grace, also, is by
Jesus Christ's intercession, being the second part of His priestly
office. O, had we not a Jesus at the right hand of God making
intercession for us, and to convey fresh supplies of grace unto us
through the virtue of His Blood being pleaded at God's right hand,
how soon would it be with us as it is with those for whom He prays
not at all (John 17:9)? But the reason why thou standest while
others fall, the reason why thou goest through the many temptations
of the world, and shakest them off from thee, while others are
ensnared and entangled therein, it is because thou hast an
interceding Jesus. "I have prayed," saith He, "that thy faith fail
not" (Luke 22:32).
4. It is partly by the virtue of Christ's
intercession that the elect are brought in. There are many that are
to come to Christ which are not yet brought in to Christ: and it is
one part of His work to pray for their salvation too-"Neither pray I
for these alone, but for them also which shall believe," though as
yet they do not believe "on Me," but that they may believe "through
their word" (John 17:20). And let me tell thee, soul, for thy
comfort, who art a-coming to Christ, panting and sighing, as if thy
heart would break, I tell thee, soul, thou wouldst never have come
to Christ, if He had not first, by the virtue of His blood and
intercession, sent into thy heart an earnest desire after Christ;
and let me tell thee also, that it is His business to make
intercession for thee, not only that thou mightest come in, but that
thou mightest be preserved when thou art come in (Compare Heb 7:25;
Rom 8:33-39).
5. It is by the intercession of Christ that
the infirmities of the saints in their holy duties are forgiven.
Alas, if it were not for the priestly office of Christ Jesus, the
prayers, alms, and other duties of the saints might be rejected,
because of the sin that is in them; but Jesus being our High Priest,
He is ready to take away the iniquities of our holy things,
perfuming our prayers with the glory of His own perfections; and
therefore it is that there is an answer given to the saints'
prayers, and also acceptance of their holy duties (Rev 8:3,4). "But
Christ being come an high priest of good things to come, by a
greater and more perfect tabernacle, not made with hands, that is to
say, not of this building; neither by the blood of goats and calves,
but by His own blood He entered in once into the holy place, having
obtained eternal redemption for us. For if the blood of bulls and of
goats, and the ashes of an heifer sprinkling the unclean,
sanctifieth to the purifying of the flesh: how much more shall the
blood of Christ, who through the eternal Spirit offered Himself
without spot to God, purge your conscience from dead works to serve
the living God? And for this cause He is the mediator of the New
Testament," or covenant, "that by means of death, for the redemption
of the transgressions that were under the first testament, they
which are called," notwithstanding all their sins, "might receive
the promise of eternal inheritance" (Heb 9:11-15).
Third. The third thing now to be spoken to
is, to show where and how Jesus Christ outwent and goes beyond these
priests, in all their qualifications and offices, for the comfort of
poor saints.
1. They that were called to the priesthood
under the law were but men; but He is both God and man (Heb 7:3,28).
2. Their qualifications were in them in a
very scanty way; but Jesus was every way qualified in an infinite
and full way.
3. They were consecrated but for a time, but
He for evermore (Heb 7:23,24).
4. They were made without an oath, but He
with an oath (Verses 20,21).
5. They as servants; but He as a Son (Hebrews
3:6).
6. Their garments were but such as could be
made with hands, but His the very righteousness of God (Exo 28; Rom
3:22; Phil 3:8,9).
7. Their offerings were but the body and
blood of beasts, and such like, but His offering was His own body
and soul (Heb 9:12,13; 10:4,5; Isa 53:10).
8. Those were at best but a shadow or type,
but He the very substance and end of all those ceremonies (Heb
9:1,10,11).
9. Their holy place was but made by men, but
His, or that which Jesus is entered, is into Heaven itself (Heb
9:2,3,24).
10. When they went to offer their sacrifice,
they were forced to offer for themselves, as men compassed about
with infirmity, but He holy, harmless, who did never commit the
least transgression (Heb 7:26; 10:11).
11. They when they went to offer they were
fain to do it standing, to signify that God had no satisfaction
therein; but He, when "He had offered one sacrifice for sins for
ever, sat down on the right hand of God," to signify that God was
very well pleased with His offering (Heb 10:12).
12. They were fain to offer "oftentimes the
same sacrifices, which can never take away sins"; but He, "by one
offering hath perfected for ever them that are sanctified" (Heb
10:11,14).
13. Their sacrifices at the best could but
serve for the cleansing of the flesh, but His for cleansing both
body and soul-the blood of Jesus Christ doth purge the conscience
from dead works, to live a holy life (Heb 9:13,14).
14. Those high priests could not offer but
once a year in the holiest of all, but our High Priest He ever
liveth to make intercession for us (Heb 9:7; 12:24,25).
15. Those high priests, notwithstanding they
were priests, they were not always to wear their holy garments; but
Jesus never puts them off of Him, but is in them always.
16. Those high priests, death would be too
hard for them, but our High Priest hath vanquished and overcome that
cruel enemy of ours, and brought life and immortality to light
through the glorious Gospel (Heb 7:21,23; 2:15; 2 Tim 1:10).
17. Those high priests were not able to save
themselves; but this is able to save Himself, and all that come to
God, by Him (Heb 7:25).
18. Those high priests" blood could not do
away sin; but the blood of Jesus Christ, who is our High Priest,
"cleanseth us from all sin" (1 John 1:7).
19. Those high priests sometimes by sin
caused God to reject their sacrifices; but this High Priest doth
always the things that please Him.
20. Those high priests could never convey the
Spirit by virtue of their sacrifices or office; but this High
Priest, our Lord Jesus, He can and doth give all the gifts and
graces that are given to the sons of men.
21. Those high priests could never by their
sacrifices bring the soul of any sinner to glory by virtue of
itself; but Jesus hath by one offering, as I said before, perfected
for ever those that He did die for. Thus in brief I have showed in
some particulars how and wherein Jesus our High Priest doth go
beyond those high priests; and many more without question might be
mentioned, but I forbear.
Christ the forerunner of the saints.
FIFTH. A fifth office of Christ in reference
to the second covenant was, that He should be the forerunner to
Heaven before His saints that were to follow after. First, He
strikes hands in the covenant, [and then] He stands bound as a
Surety to see everything in the covenant accomplished that was to be
done on His part; [next] He brings the message from Heaven to the
world; and before He goeth back, He offereth Himself for the same
sins that He agreed to suffer for; and so soon as this was done, He
goeth post-haste to Heaven again, not only to exercise the second
part of His priestly office, but as our forerunner, to take
possession for us, even into Heaven itself, as you may see, where it
is said, "Whither the Forerunner is for us entered" (Heb 6:20).
First. He is run before to open Heaven's
gates-Be ye open, ye everlasting doors, that the King of Glory may
enter in.
Second. He is run before us to take
possession of glory in our natures for us.
Third. He is run before to prepare us our
places against we come after-"I go to prepare a place for you" (John
14:1-3).
Fourth. He is run thither to make the way
easy, in that He hath first trodden the path Himself.
Fifth. He is run thither to receive gifts for
us. All spiritual and heavenly gifts had been kept from us had not
Christ, so soon as the time appointed was come, run back to the
Kingdom of Glory to receive them for us. But I cannot stand to
enlarge upon these glorious things, the Lord enlarge them upon your
hearts by meditation. [These things have I spoken to show you that
saints are under grace.]
[CHRIST COMPLETELY FULFILLED THE CONDITIONS OF THE NEW COVENANT.]
Here now I might begin to speak of His
prophetical and kingly office, and the privileges that do and shall
come thereby, but that I fear I shall be too tedious, therefore at
this time I shall pass them by. Thus you may see how the Covenant of
Grace doth run, and with Whom it was made, and also what were the
conditions thereof.
Now, then, this grace, this everlasting grace
of God, comes to be free to us through the satisfaction, according
to the conditions, given by Another for us; for though it be free,
and freely given to us, yet the obtaining of it did cost our Head,
our public Man, a very dear price. "For ye are bought with a price,"
even with the precious blood of Christ. So it is by Another, I say,
not by us; yet it is as surely made over to us, even to so many of
us as do or shall believe, as if we had done it, and obtained the
grace of God ourselves (1 Cor 6:20; 1 Peter 1:9). Nay, surer; for
consider, I say, this grace is free to us, and comes upon a clear
score, by virtue of the labour and purchase of Another for us; mark,
that which is obtained by Another for us is not obtained for us by
ourselves-No, but Christ hath, not by the blood of goats and calves,
"obtained eternal redemption for us," which were things offered by
men under the law, "but by His own blood," meaning Christ's, "He
entered in once into the holy place, having obtained eternal
redemption for us" (Heb 9:12).
It comes to be unchangeable through the
perfection of that satisfaction that was given to God through the
Son of Mary for us; for whatever the Divine, infinite, and eternal
justice of God did call for at the hands of man, if ever he intended
to be a partaker of the grace of God, this Jesus, this one Man, this
public Person, did, did completely give a satisfaction to it, even
so effectually; which caused God not only to say, I am pleased, but
"I am well pleased"; completely and sufficiently satisfied with Thee
on their behalf; for so you must understand it (Matt 3:17). Mark
therefore these following words-"And, having made peace," or
completely made up the difference, "through the blood of His cross,
by Him to reconcile all things unto Himself; by Him, I say, whether
they be things in earth, or things in heaven. And you, that were
sometime alienated and enemies in your mind by wicked works, yet now
hath He reconciled," how? "in the body of His flesh through death,
to present you holy," mark, "holy and unblameable and unreproveable
in His sight" (Col 1:20-22). And thus it is grace, unchangeable
grace to us; because it was obtained, yea, completely obtained, for
us, by Jesus Christ, God-man.
Object. But some may say, How was it possible
that one man Jesus, by one offering, should so completely obtain and
bring in unchangeable grace for such an innumerable company of
sinners as are to be saved?
Answ. First. In that He was every way fitted
for such a work. And, Second. In that, as I said before, He did
every way completely satisfy that which was offended by our
disobedience to the former covenant.
[First. He was every way fitted for such a
work]. And, for the clearing of this,
1. Consider, was it man that had offended? He
was Man that gave the satisfaction-"For since by man came death, by
man came also the resurrection of the dead" (1 Cor 15:21).
2. Was it God that was offended? He was God
that did give a satisfaction-"Unto us a child is born, unto us a son
is given.-and His name shall be called The mighty God" (Isa 9:6).
"He thought it not robbery to be equal with God: but," for our
sakes, He "made Himself of no reputation," etc. (Phil 2:6-7).
3. For the further clearing of this, to show
you that in everything He was rightly qualified for this great work,
see what God Himself saith of Him; He calls Him, in the first place,
Man; and, secondly, He owns Him to be His Fellow, saying, "Awake, O
sword, against My Shepherd, and against the Man"-mark, "the Man that
is My Fellow, saith the LORD of hosts" (Zech 13:7).
So that now, let Divine and infinite justice
turn itself which way it will, it finds one that can tell how to
match it; for if it say, I will require the satisfaction of man,
here is a Man to satisfy its cry; and if it say, But I am an
infinite God, and must and will have an infinite satisfaction; here
is One also that is infinite, even fellow with God, fellow in His
essence and being; fellow in His power and strength; fellow in His
wisdom; fellow in His mercy and grace; together with the rest of the
attributes of God; so that, I say, let justice turn itself which way
it will, here is a complete Person to give a complete satisfaction
(Prov 8:23; 1 Cor 1:24; Titus 2:10; compared with Verse 11). Thus
much of the fitness of the Person.
Second. For the completeness of the
satisfaction given by Him for us. And that is discovered in these
particulars-
1. Doth justice call for the blood of that
nature that sinned? here is the heart-blood of Jesus Christ-"We have
redemption through His blood," (Eph 1:7,14; 1 Peter 1:18,19; Zech
9:10,11).
2. Doth justice say that this blood, if it be
not the blood of One that is really and naturally God, it will not
give satisfaction to infinite justice? then here is God, purchasing
His Church "with His own blood" (Acts 20:28).
3. Doth justice say, that it must not only
have satisfaction for sinners, but they that are saved must be also
washed and sanctified with this blood? then here is He that so loved
us, that He "washed us from our sins in His own blood" (Rev 1:5).
4. Is there to be a righteousness to clothe
them with that is to be presented before Divine justice? there here
is the righteousness of Christ, which is "even the righteousness of
God by faith" (Rom 3:22; Phil 3:8-10).
5. Are there any sins now that will fly upon
this Saviour like so many lions, or raging devils, if He take in
hand to redeem man? He will be content to bear them all Himself
alone, even in His own body upon the tree (1 Peter 2:24).
6. Is there any law now that will curse and
condemn this Saviour for standing in our persons to give
satisfaction to God for the transgression of man? He will be willing
to be cursed, yea, to be made a curse for sinners, rather than they
shall be cursed and damned themselves (Gal 3:13).
7. Must the great and glorious God, whose
eyes are so pure that He cannot behold iniquity; I say, must He not
only have the blood, but the very life of Him that will take in hand
to be the Deliverer and Saviour of us poor miserable sinners? He is
willing to lay down His life for His sheep (John 10:11).
8. Must He not only die a natural death, but
must His soul descend into hell, though it should not be left there,
He will suffer that also Psalms 16:10; and Acts 2:31. 11
9. Must He not only be buried, but rise again
from the dead, and overcome death, that He might be the first-fruits
to God of them that sleep, which shall be saved? He will be buried,
and also through the strength of His Godhead, He will raise Himself
out of the grave, though death hold Him never so fast, and the Jews
lay never such a great stone upon the mouth of the selpulchre, and
seal it never so fast (1 Cor 15:4; Luke 24:34).
10. Must He carry that body into the presence
of His Father, to take possession of Heaven, and must He appear
there as a priest, as a forerunner, as an advocate, as prophet, as a
treasure-house, as an interceder and pleader of the causes of His
people? He will be all these, and much more, to the end the grace of
God by faith in Jesus Christ might be made sure to all the seed.
"Who then can condemn? It is God that justifieth; because Christ
hath died, yea rather, that is risen again." Who, now seeing all
this is so effectually done, shall lay anything, the least thing?
who can find the least flaw, the least wrinkle, the least defect or
imperfection, in this glorious satisfaction (Rom 8:33-34; Heb 6:20;
9:24; John 14:2,3; 1 John 2:1)?
Object. But is it possible that He should so
soon give infinite justice a satisfaction, a complete satisfaction?
for the eternal God doth require an eternal lying under the curse,
to the end He may be eternally satisfied.
Answ. Indeed, that which is infinite must
have an eternity to satisfy God in-that is, they that fall into the
prison and pit of utter darkness must be there to all eternity, to
the end the justice of God may have its full blow at them. But now
He that I am speaking of is God, and so is infinite (Isa 9:6; Titus
1:16,17; Heb 1:8,9; Phil 2:4-6). Now, He which is true God is able
to give in as little a time an infinite satisfaction as Adam was in
giving the dissatisfaction. Adam himself might have given
satisfaction for himself as soon as Christ had he been very God, as
Jesus Christ was. For the reason why the posterity of Adam, even so
many of them as fall short of life, must lie broiling in Hell to all
eternity is this -they are not able to give the justice of God
satisfaction, they being not infinite, as aforesaid. "But Christ,"
that is, God-man, "being come an High Priest," that is, to offer and
give satisfaction, "of good things to come , by a greater and more
perfect tabernacle, not made with hands, that is to say, not of this
building; neither by the blood of goats and calves, but by His
own,"-mark you that, "but by His own blood He entered in once into
the holy place, having obtained eternal redemption for us." But how?
"For if the blood of bulls and of goats, and the ashes of an heifer
sprinkling the unclean, sanctifieth to the purifying of the flesh:
how much more shall the blood of Christ, who through the eternal
Spirit," who through the power and virtue of His infinite Godhead,
"offered Himself without spot to God, purge your conscience from
dead works to serve the living God? And for this cause," that is,
for that He is God as well as man, and so able to give justice an
infinite satisfaction, therefore, "He is the mediator of the new
testament, that by means of death, for the redemption of the
transgressions that were under the first testament, they which are
called might receive the promise of eternal inheritance" (Heb
9:11-15). As I said before.
Object. This is much; but is God connected
with this? Is He satisfied now in the behalf of sinners by this
Man's thus suffering? If He is, then how doth it appear?
Answ. It is evident, yea, wonderful evident,
that this hath pleased Him to the full, as appeareth by these
following demonstrations.-
First. In that God did admit Him into His
presence; yea, receive Him with joy and music, even with the sound
of the trumpet, at His ascension into Heaven (Psa 47:5). And Christ
makes it an argument to His children that His righteousness was
sufficient, in that He went to His Father, and they saw Him no more,
"of righteousness," saith He, "because I go to My Father, and ye see
Me no more" (John 16:10). As if He had said, My Spirit shall show to
the world that I have brought in a sufficient righteousness to
justify sinners withal, in that when I go to appear in the presence
of My Father on their behalf, He shall give Me entertainment, and
not throw Me down from Heaven, because I did not do it sufficiently.
Again; if you consider the high esteem that
God the Father doth set on the death of His Son, you will find that
He hath received good content thereby. When the Lord Jesus, by way
of complaint, told His Father that He and His merits were not valued
to the worth, His Father answered, It is a light thing that I should
give Thee, O My Servant, to bring Jacob again; "I will also give
Thee for a light to the Gentiles, that Thou mayest be My salvation
unto the end of the earth" (Isa 49:6). As if the Lord had said, "My
Son, I do value Thy death at a higher rate than that Thou shouldst
save the tribes of Israel only; behold the Gentiles, the barbarous
heathens, they also shall be brought in as the price of Thy blood.
It is a light thing that Thou shouldest be My Servant only to bring,
or redeem, the tribes of Jacob, and to restore the preserved of
Israel: I will also give Thee for a light to the Gentiles, that Thou
mayest be My salvation unto the end of the earth." 12
Again; you may see it also by the carriage of
God the Father to all the great sinners to whom mercy was proffered.
We do not find that God maketh any objection against them to come to
Him for the pardon of their sins; because He did want a satisfaction
suitable to the greatness of their sins. There was Manasseh, who was
one that burned his children in the fire to the devil, that used
witchcraft, that used to worship the host of heaven, that turned his
back on the Word that God sent unto him; nay, that did worse than
the very heathen that God cast out before the children of Israel (2
Chron 33:1-13). Also those that are spoken of in the Nineteenth of
Acts, that did spend so much time in conjuration, and the like, for
such I judge they were, that when they came to burn their books,
they counted the price thereof to be fifty thousand pieces of silver
(Acts 19:19). Simon Magus also, that was a sorcerer, and bewitched
the whole city, yet he had mercy proffered to him once and again
(Acts 8). I say, it was not the greatness of the sins of these
sinners; no, nor of an innumerable company of others, that made God
at all to object against the salvation of their souls, which justice
would have constrained Him to had He not had satisfaction sufficient
by the blood of the Lord Jesus. Nay, further, I do find that because
God the Father would not have the merits of His Son to be
undervalued, I say, He doth therefore freely by His consent let
mercy be proffered to the greatest sinners-in the first place, for
the Jews, that were the worst of men in that day for blasphemy
against the Gospel; yet the Apostle proffered mercy to them in the
first place-"It was necessary," saith he, "that the Word of God
should first have been spoken to you" (Acts 3:26; 13:46). And Christ
gave them commission so to do; for, saith He, Let repentance and
remission of sins be preached in My name among all nations, and
begin-mark that, "beginning at Jerusalem" (Luke 24:47), Let them
that but the other day had their hands up to the elbows in My
heart's blood have the first proffer of My mercy. And, saith Paul,
"For this cause I obtained mercy, that in me first Jesus Christ
might show forth all longsuffering, for a pattern to them which
should hereafter believe on Him to life everlasting" (1 Tim 1:16).
As the Apostle saith, those sinners that were dead, possessed with
the devil, and the children of wrath, He hath quickened, delivered,
and saved. That He might, even in the very "ages to come He might
show the exceeding riches of His grace in His kindness toward us,"
and that "through Christ Jesus" (Eph 2:7).
Second. It is evident that that which this
Man did as a common person He did it completely and satisfactorily,
as appears by the openness, as I may so call it, which was in the
heart of God to Him at His resurrection and ascension-"Ask of Me,"
saith He, "and I shall give Thee the" very "heathen for Thine
inheritance, and the uttermost parts of the earth for Thy
possession" (Psa 2:8). And this was at His resurrection (Acts
13:33). Whereas, though He had asked, yet if He had not given a full
and complete satisfaction, justice would not have given Him any
thing; for justice, the justice of God, is so pure, that if it be
not completely satisfied in every particular, it giveth nothing but
curses (Gal 3:10).
Third. It is yet far more evident that He
hath indeed pleased God in the behalf of sinners, in that God hath
given Him gifts to distribute to sinners, yea, the worst of sinners,
as a fruit of His satisfaction, and that at His ascension (Psa
68:18). Christ hath so satisfied God, that He hath given Him all the
treasures both of Heaven and earth to dispose of as He seeth good;
He hath so pleased God, that He hath given Him a name above every
name, a sceptre above every sceptre, a crown above every crown, a
kingdom above every kingdom; He hath given Him the highest place in
Heaven, even His own right hand; He hath given Him all the power of
Heaven and earth, and under the earth, in His own hand, to bind whom
He pleaseth, and to set free whom He thinks meet; He hath, in a
word, such a high esteem in the eyes of His Father, that He hath put
into His hands all things that are for the profit of His people,
both in this world and that which is to come; and all this as the
fruit of His faithfulness in doing of His work, as the Mediator of
the new covenant (Phil 2:9; Rev 19:6). Thou hast ascended on high,
Thou hast led captivity captive, Thou hast received gifts-mark, Thou
hast received them-for men, even for the worst of men, for the
rebellious also; and hath sent forth some, being furnished with
these gifts; some, I say, for the work of the ministry, to the
edifying of them that are already called, and also for the calling
in of all those for whom He covenanted with His Father, till all
come in the unity of faith, etc. (Eph 4:8-13).
Fourth. It doth still appear yet far more
evident; for will you hear what the Father Himself saith for the
showing of His well-pleasedness in these two particulars-First, in
that He bids poor souls to hear and to do as Christ would have them
(Matt 3:17; Luke 9:35). Secondly, in that He resolves to make them
that turn their backs upon Him, that dishonour Him, which is done in
a very great measure by those that lay aside His merits done by
Himself for justification; I say, He that resolved to make this His
footstool, where He saith, "Sit Thou at My right hand, until I make
Thine enemies Thy footstool" (Psa 110:1). Are they enemies to Thee?
saith God. I will be even with them. Do they slight Thy merits? Do
they slight Thy groans, Thy tears, Thy blood, Thy death, Thy
resurrection and intercession, Thy second coming again in heavenly
glory? I will tear them and rend them; I will make them as mire in
the streets; I will make Thy enemies Thy footstool (Matt 22:44; Heb
1:13; 10:13). Ay, saith He, and "Thou shalt dash them in pieces like
a potter's vessel" (Psa 2:9). Look to it you that slight the merits
of the blood of Christ.
Fifth. Again further; yet God will make all
the world to know that He hath been and is well pleased in His Son,
in that God hath given, and will make it appear He hath given, the
world to come into His hand; and that He shall raise the dead, bring
them before His judgment-seat, execute judgment upon them, which He
pleaseth to execute judgment on to their damnation; and to receive
them to eternal life whom He doth favour, even so many as shall be
found to believe in His name and merits (Heb 2). "For as the Father
hath life in Himself; so hath He given to the Son to have life in
Himself; and hath given Him authority to execute judgment also,
because He is the Son of man. For the hour is coming, in the which
all that are in the graves shall hear His voice, and shall come
forth; they that have done good, unto the resurrection of life; and
they that have done evil, unto the resurrection of damnation" (John
5:26-29). Ay, and the worst enemy that Christ hath now shall come at
that day with a pale face, with a quaking heart, and bended knees,
trembling before Him, confessing the glory of His merits, and the
virtue there was in them to save, "to the glory of God the Father"
(Rom 14:11; Phil 2:11).
Much more might be added to discover the
glorious perfection of this Man's satisfaction; but for you that
desire to be further satisfied concerning this, search the
Scriptures, and beg of God to give you faith and understanding
therein; and as for you that slight these things, and continue so
doing, God hath another way to take with you, even to dash you in
pieces like a potter's vessel; for this hath Christ received of His
Father to do unto you (Rev 2:27).
Thus I have showed you in particular, that
the Covenant of Grace of God is free and unchangeable to men-that
is, in that it hath been obtained for men, and that perfectly, to
the satisfying of justice, and taking all things out of the way that
were any ways a hindrance to our salvation (Col 2:14).
[THE COVENANT OF GRACE UNCHANGEABLE; THE OPPOSERS ANSWERED.]
The second thing for the discovering of this
freeness and constancy of the Covenant of Grace of God is manifested
thus-
First. Whatsoever any man hath of the grace
of God, he hath it as a free gift of God through Christ Jesus the
Mediator of this covenant, even when they are in a state of enmity
to Him, whether it be Christ as the foundation-stone, or faith to
lay hold of Him, mark that (Rom 5:8,9; Col 1:21,22). "For by grace
are ye saved through faith; and that not of yourselves," not for
anything in you, or done by you for the purchasing of it, but "it is
the gift of God," (Eph 2:8) and that bestowed on you, even when ye
"were dead in trespasses and sins" (Eph 2:1,9). Nay, if thou hast so
much as one desire that is right, it is the gift of God; for of
ourselves, saith the Apostle, we are not able to speak a good word,
or think a good thought (2 Cor 3:5).
Was it not grace, absolute grace, that God
made promise to Adam after transgression? (Gen 3:15). Was it not
free grace in God to save such a wretch as Manasseh was, who used
enchantments, witchcraft, burnt his children in the fire, and
wrought much evil? (2 Chron 33). Was it not free grace to save such
as those were that are spoken of in the 16th of Ezekiel, which no
eye pitied? Was it not free grace for Christ to give Peter a loving
look after he had cursed, and swore, and denied Him? Was it not free
grace that met Paul when he was agoing to Damascus to persecute,
which converted him, and made him a vessel of mercy?
And what shall I say of such that are spoken
of in 1 Corinthians 6:9, 10, speaking there of fornicators,
idolaters, adulterers, effeminate, abusers of themselves with
mankind, thieves, covetous, drunkards, revilers, extortioners, the
basest of sinners in the world, and yet were washed, and yet were
justified; was it not freely by grace? O saints, you that are in
heaven cry out, "We came hither by grace; and you that are on the
earth, I am sure you cry, If ever we do go thither, it must be
freely by grace!"
Second. In the next place, it appears to be
unchangeable in this-1. Because justice being once satisfied doth
not use to call for the debt again. No; let never such a sinner come
to Jesus Christ, and so to God by Him, and justice, instead of
speaking against the salvation of that sinner, it will say, I am
just as well as faithful to forgive him his sins (1 John 1:9). When
justice itself is pleased with a man, and speaks on his side,
instead of speaking against him, we may well cry out, Who shall
condemn? 2. Because there is no law to come in against the sinner
that believes in Jesus Christ; for he is not under that, and that by
right comes in against none but those that are under it. But
believers are not under that-that is, not their Lord, therefore that
hath nothing to do with them; and besides, Christ's blood hath not
only taken away the curse thereof, but also He hath in His own
Person completely fulfilled it as a public Person in our stead. (Rom
7:1-4). 3. The devil that accused them is destroyed (Heb 2:14,15).
4. Death, and the grave, and Hell are overcome (1 Cor 15:55; Hosea
13:14). 5. Sin, that great enemy of man's salvation, that is washed
away (Rev 1:5). 6. The righteousness of God is put upon them that
believe, and given to them, and they are found in it (Phil 3:8-10;
Rom 3:22). 7. Christ is always in Heaven to plead for them, and to
prepare a place for them (Heb 7:24; John 14:1-4). 8. He hath not
only promised that He will not leave us, nor forsake us, but He hath
also sworn to fulfill His promises. O rich grace! O free grace!
Lord, who desired Thee to promise? who compelled Thee to swear? We
use to take honest men upon their bare word, but God, "willing more
abundantly to show unto the heirs of promise the immutability of His
counsel," hath "confirmed it by an oath: that by two immutable
things," His promise and His oath, "in which it was impossible for
God to lie," or break either of them, "we might have a strong
consolation, who have fled for refuge to lay hold upon the hope set
before us" (Heb 6:17-18). I will warrant you, God will never break
His oath; therefore we may well have good ground to hope from such a
good foundation as this, that God will never leave us indeed. Amen.
Third. Not only thus, but, 1. God hath
begotten believers again to Himself, to be His adopted and accepted
children, in and through the Lord Jesus (1 Peter 1:3). 2. God hath
prepared a kingdom for them before the foundation of the world,
through Jesus Christ (Matt 25:34). 3. He hath given them an earnest
of their happiness while they live here in this world. "After that
ye believed, ye were sealed with that holy Spirit of promise, which
is the earnest of our inheritance until the redemption of the
purchased possession, unto the praise of His glory," and that
through this Jesus (Eph 1:13,14). [These things are more fully laid
down in that part of the book which containeth the discourse of the
privileges of the new covenant]. 4. If His children sin through
weakness, or by sudden temptation, they confessing of it, He
willingly forgives, and heals all their wounds, reneweth His love
towards them, waits to do them good, casteth their sins into the
depths of the sea, and all this freely, without any work done by men
as men-Not for your own sakes do I do this, O house of Israel, be it
known unto you, saith the Lord, but wholly and alone by the blood of
Jesus (Eze 36:23,23). 5. In a word, if you would see it altogether,
God's love was the cause why Jesus Christ was sent to bleed for
sinners. Jesus Christ's bleeding stops the cries of Divine justice;
God looks upon them as complete in Him, gives them to Him as His by
right of purchase. Jesus ever lives to pray for them that are thus
given unto Him. God sends His Holy Spirit into them to reveal this
to them, sends His angels to minister for them; and all this by
virtue of an Everlasting Covenant between the Father and the Son.
Thrice happy are the people that are in such a case!
Nay, further, He hath made them brethren with
Jesus Christ, members of His flesh and of His bones, the spouse of
this Lord Jesus; and all to show you how dearly, how really, how
constantly He loveth us, who, by faith of His operation, have laid
hold upon Him. [These things I might have treated upon more
largely].
[Further Arguments and Objections answered].
I shall now lay down a few arguments for the
superabundant clearing of it, and afterwards answer two or three
objections that may be made against it, and so I shall fall upon the
next thing.
First. God loves the saints as He loves Jesus
Christ; and God loves Jesus Christ with an eternal love; therefore
the saints also with the same. "Thou hast loved them as Thou has
loved Me" (John 17:23).
Second. That love which is God Himself, must
needs be everlasting love; and that is the love wherewith God hath
loved His saints in Christ Jesus; therefore His love towards His
children in Christ must needs be an everlasting love. There is none
dare say that the love of God is mixed with a created mixture; if
not, then it must needs be Himself (1 John 4:16). [You must not
understand that love in God is a passion as it is in us; but the
love of God is the very essence or nature of God].
Third. That love which is always pitched upon
us, in an object as holy as God, must needs be an everlasting love.
Now the love of God was and is pitched upon us, through an object as
holy as God Himself, even our Lord Jesus; therefore it must needs be
unchangeable.
Fourth. If He with whom the Covenant of Grace
was made, did in every thing and condition do even what the Lord
could desire or require of Him, that His love might be extended to
us, and that for ever, then His love must needs be an everlasting
love, seeing everything required of us was completely accomplished
for us by Him; and all this hath our Lord Jesus done, and that most
gloriously, even on our behalf; therefore it must needs be a love
that lasts for ever and ever.
Fifth. If God hath declared Himself to be the
God that changeth not, and hath sworn to be immutable in His
promise, then surely He will be unchangeable; and He hath done so;
therefore it is impossible for God to lie, and so for His eternal
love to be changeable (Heb 6:13-18). Here is an argument of the
Spirit's own making! Who can contradict it? If any object, and say,
But still it is upon the condition of believing-I answer, The
condition also is His own free gift, and not a qualification arising
from the stock of nature (Eph 2:8; Phil 1:28,29). So that here is
the love unchangeable; here is also the condition given by Him whose
love is unchangeable, which may serve yet further for a strong
argument that God will have His love unchangeable. Sinner, this is
better felt and enjoyed than talked of.
Objection First. But if this love of God be
unchangeable in itself, yet it is not unchangeably set upon the
saints unless they behave themselves the better. [The first
objection].
Answ. As God's love at the first was bestowed
upon the saints without anything foreseen by the Lord in them, as
done by them, Deuteronomy 9:4-6, so He goeth on with the same,
Saying, "I will never leave thee nor forsake thee" (Heb 13:5).
Objection Second. But how cometh it to pass
then, that many fall off again from the grace of the Gospel, after a
profession of it for some time; some to delusions, and some to their
own sins again? [The second objection].
Answ. They are all fallen away, not from the
everlasting love of God to them, but from the profession of the love
of God to them. Men may profess that God loves them when there is no
such matter, and that they are the children of God, when the devil
is their father; as it is in John 8:40-44. Therefore they that do
finally fall away from a profession of the grace of the Gospel, it
is, first, because they are bastards and not sons. Secondly, because
as they are not sons, so God suffereth them to fall, to make it
appear that they are not sons, not of the household of God-"They
went out from us, but they were not of us; for if they had been of
us, they would no doubt," mark that, "no doubt," saith he, "they
would have continued with us: but they went out," from us, "that
they might be made manifest that they were not all of us" (1 John
2:19). And though Hymeneus and Philetus do throw themselves headlong
to Hell, "nevertheless the foundation of God standeth sure, having
this seal, The Lord knoweth them that are His" (2 Tim 2:17-19).
Objection Third. But the Scripture saith that
there are some that had faith, yet lost it, and have made shipwreck
of it. [The third objection]. Now God loves no longer than they
believe, as is evident; for "he that believeth not shall be damned."
So then, if some may have faith, and yet lose it, and so lose the
love of God because they have lost their faith, it is evident that
God's love is not so immutable as you say it is to every one that
believeth.
Answ. There are more sorts of faith than one
that are spoken of in Scripture-
1. There is a faith that man may have, and
yet be nothing, none of the saints of God, and yet may do great
things therewith (1 Cor 13:1-4).
2. There is a faith that was wrought merely
by the operation of the miracles that were done in those days by
Christ and his followers-"And many of the people believed in Him."
How came they by their faith? Why, by the operation of the miracles
that He did among them; for said they, "When Christ cometh, will He
do more miracles than these which this man hath done?" (John 7:31).
The great thing that wrought their faith in
them, was only by seeing the miracles that He did, John 2:23, which
is not that saving faith which is called the faith of God's elect,
as is evident; for there must not be only miracles wrought upon
outward objects to beget that-that being too weak a thing-but it
must be by the same power that was stretched out in raising Christ
from the dead; yea, the exceeding greatness of that power (Eph
1:18,19). So there is a believing, being taken with some marvelous
work, visibly appearing to the outward sense of seeing; and there is
a believing that is wrought in the heart by an invisible operation
of the Spirit, revealing the certainty of the satisfaction of the
merits of Christ to the soul in a more glorious way, both for
certainty and for durableness, both as to the promise and the
constancy of it (Matt 16:17, 18).
3. There is a faith of a man's own, of a
man's self also; but the faith of the operation of God, in
Scripture, is set in opposition to that, for, saith He, you are
saved by grace, "through faith, and that not of yourselves," of your
own making, but that which is the free gift of God (Eph 2:8).
4. We say there is an historical faith-that
is, such as is begotten by the co-operation of the Spirit with the
Word.
5. We say there is a traditional faith-that
is, to believe things by tradition, because others say they believe
them; this is received by tradition, not by revelation, and shall
never be able to stand, neither at the day of death, nor at the day
of judgment; though possibly men, while they live here, may esteem
themselves and states to be very good, because their heads are
filled full of it.
6. There is a faith that is called in
Scripture a dead faith, the faith of devils, or of the devil; they
also that have only this, they are like the devil, and as sure to be
damned as he, notwithstanding their faith, if they get no better
into their hearts; for it is far off from enabling of them to lay
hold of Jesus Christ, and so to put Him on for eternal life and
sanctification, which they must do if ever they be saved (James
2:19,26).
But all these are short of the saving faith
of God's elect, as is manifest; I say, first, Because these may be
wrought, and not by that power so exceedingly stretched forth.
Secondly, Because these are wrought, partly, (1.) By the sense of
seeing-namely, the miracles-not by hearing; and, (2.) The rest is
wrought by a traditional or historical influence of the words in
their heads, not by a heavenly, invisible, almighty, and saving
operation of the Spirit of God in their hearts.
7. I do suppose also that there is a faith
that is wrought upon men through the influence of those gifts and
abilities that God gives sometimes to those that are not His own by
election, though by creation; my meaning is, some men, finding that
God hath given them very great gifts and abilities,-as to the gifts
of preaching, praying, working miracles, or the like-I say,
therefore do conclude that God is their Father, and they are His
children; the ground of which confidence is still begotten, not by
the glorious operation of the Spirit, but by a considering of the
great gifts that God hath bestowed upon them as to the things
before-mentioned. As thus, (1.) the poor soul considers how ignorant
it was, and now how knowing it is. (2.) Considering how vain it
formerly was, and also now how civil it is, presently makes this
conclusion-Surely God loves me, surely He hath made me one of His,
and will save me. This is now a wrong faith, as is evident, in that
it is placed upon a wrong object; for mark, this faith is not placed
assuredly on God's grace alone, through the blood and merits of
Christ being discovered effectually to the soul, but upon God
through those things that God hath given it, as of gifts, either to
preach, or pray, or do great works, or the like, which will
assuredly come to nought as sure as God is in Heaven, if no better
faith and ground of faith be found out for thy soul savingly to rest
upon.
As to the second clause of the objection,
which runs to this effect, God loves men upon the account of their
believing, I answer, that God loves men before they believe; He
loves them, He calls them, and gives them faith to believe-"But God,
who is rich in mercy, for His great love wherewith He loved us,"
when? when we believed, or before? "even when we were dead in sins,"
and so, far off from believers, "hath quickened us together with"
Christ, "by grace ye are saved" (Eph 2:4,5).
Now, also, I suppose that thou wilt say in
thy heart, I would you would show us then what is saving faith;
which thing it may be I may touch upon a while hence, in the next
thing that I am to speak unto. O they that have that are safe
indeed!
[SECOND. WHO, AND HOW MEN ARE ACTUALLY BROUGHT INTO THE NEW COVENANT.]
The SECOND thing that I am to speak unto is
this-WHO they are that are actually brought into this free and
unchangeable grace; and also HOW they are brought in.
Answ. Indeed, now we come to the pinch of the
whole discourse; and if God do but help me to run rightly through
this, as I do verily believe He will, I may do thee, reader, good,
and bring glory to my God.
The question containeth these two
branches-FIRST. Who are brought in; SECOND. How they are brought in.
[FIRST. Who are brought in?] The first is
quickly answered-"Christ Jesus came into the world to save sinners,"
Jewish sinners, Gentile sinners, old sinners, young sinners, great
sinners, the chiefest of sinners. Publicans and harlots-that is,
whores, cheaters, and exactors-shall enter into the Kingdom of
Heaven (1 Tim 1:15; Rom 5:7-11; 1 Cor 6:9,11; Matt 21:31). "For I
come not," saith Christ, "to call the righteous, but sinners to
repentance" (Mark 2:17).
A sinner in the Scripture is described in
general to be a transgressor of the law-"Whosoever commiteth sin,
transgresseth the law; for sin is the transgression of the law" (1
John 3:4). But particularly; they are described in a more particular
way, as, 1. Such as in whom dwelleth the devil (Eph 2:2,3). 2. Such
as will do the service of him (John 8:44). 3. Such as are enemies to
God (Col 1:21) 4. Such as are drunkards, whoremasters, liars,
perjured persons, covetous, revilers, extortionists, fornicators,
swearers, possessed with devils, thieves, idolaters, witches,
sorcerers, conjurors, murderers, and the like (1 Cor 6:9,10; 2 Chron
33:1-13; Acts 2:36,37; 9:1-6; 19:9; 1 Tim 1:14-16). These are
sinners, and such sinners that God hath prepared Heaven, happiness,
pardon of sin, and an inheritance of God, with Christ, with saints,
with angels, if they do come in and accept of grace, as I might
prove at large; for God's grace is so great, that if they do come to
Him by Christ, presently all is forgiven them; therefore never
object that thy sins are too great to be pardoned; but come, taste
and see how good the Lord is to any whosoever come unto Him.
[SECOND.] The second thing is, How are these
brought into this Everlasting Covenant of Grace?
Answ. When God doth in deed and in truth
bring in a sinner into this most blessed covenant, [Come to the
Touchstone, sinner]. for so it is, He usually goeth this way-
First. He slays or kills the party to all
things besides Himself, and His Son Jesus Christ, and the comforts
of the Spirit. For the clearing of this I shall show you, 1. With
what God kills; 2. How God kills; 3. To what God kills those whom He
makes alive in Jesus Christ.
1. [What God kills]. When God brings sinners
into the Covenant of Grace, He doth first kill them with the
Covenant of Works, which is the moral law, or Ten Commandments. This
is Paul's doctrine, and also Paul's experience. It is his doctrine
where he saith, "The ministration of death, written and engraven in
stones-the ministration of condemnation," which is the law, in that
place called the letter, "killeth" (2 Cor 3:6-9). The letter, saith
he, killeth; or the law, or the ministration of death, which in
another place is called "the voice of words" (Heb 12:19), because
they have no life in them, but rather death and damnation, through
our inability to fulfill them, doth kill (Rom 8:3; 2 Cor 6). It is
his experience where he saith, "I was alive" that is, to my own
things, "without the law once," that is, before God did strike him
dead by it, "but when the commandment came," that is, to do and
exercise its right office on me, which was to kill me, then "sin
revived, and I died," and I was killed. "And the commandment," or
the law, "which was ordained to" be unto "life, I found to be unto
death. For sin, taking occasion by the commandment, deceived me, and
by it slew me" (Rom 7:9-11).
2. But how doth God kill with this law, or
covenant?
1. By opening to the soul the spirituality of
it-"The law is spiritual," saith he, "but I am carnal, sold under
sin" (Rom 7:14). Now the spirituality of the law is discovered this
way-
(1.) By showing to the soul that every sinful
thought is a sin against it. Ay, sinner, when the law doth come home
indeed upon thy soul in the spirituality of it, it will discover
such things to thee to be sins that now thou lookest over and
regardest not; that is a remarkable saying of Paul when he saith,
"Sin revived, and I died." Sin revived, saith he; as if he had said,
Those things that before I did not value nor regard, but looked upon
them to be trifles, to be dead, and forgotten; but when the law was
fastened on my soul, it did so raise them from the dead, call them
into mind, so muster them before my face, and put such strength into
them, that I was overmastered by them, by the guilt of them. Sin
revived by the commandment, or my sins had mighty strength, life,
and abundance of force upon me because of that, insomuch that they
killed me (Matt 5:28).
(2.) It showeth that every such sin deserveth
eternal damnation. Friends, I doubt there be but few of you that
have seen the spirituality of the law of works. But this is one
thing in which it discovereth its spirituality, and this is the
proper work of the Law.
(3.) God, with a discovery of this, doth also
discover His own Divine and infinite justice, of which the law is a
description, which backs what is discovered by the law, and that by
discovering of its purity and holiness to be so Divine, so pure, so
upright, and so far of from winking at the least sin, that He doth
by that law, without any favour, condemn the sinner for that sin
(Gal 3:10). Now, when He hath brought the soul into this
praemunire,13 into this puzzle, then,
2. He showeth to the soul the nature and
condition of the law as to its dealings with, or forbearing of, the
sinner that hath sinned against it; which is to pass an eternal
curse upon both soul and body of the party so offending, saying to
him, Cursed be the man that continueth not in everything that is
written in the Book of the Law to do it; for, saith the law, this is
my proper work; first, to show thee thy sins; and when I have done
that, then, in the next place, to condemn thee for them, and that
without all remedy, as from ME, or anything within my bounds, for I
am not to save any, to pardon any-nay, not to favour any in the
least thing that have sinned against me; for God did not send me to
make alive, but to discover sin, and to condemn for the same. Now,
so soon as this is presented to thy conscience, in the next place,
the Lord also by this law doth show that now there is no righteous
act according to the tenor of that covenant that can replieve him,
or take him off from all this horror and curse that lies upon him;
because that is not an administration of pardon, as I said before,
to forgive the sin, but an administration of damnation, because of
transgression. O, the very discovery of this striketh the soul into
a deadly swoon, even above half dead! But when God doth do the work
indeed, He doth, in the next place, show the soul that he is the man
that is eternally under this covenant by nature, and that it is he
that hath sinned against this law, and doth by right deserve the
curse and displeasure of the same, and that all that ever he can do
will not give satisfaction to that glorious justice that did give
this law; holy actions, tears of blood, selling all, and giving it
to the poor, or whatever else can be done by thee, it comes all
short and is all to no purpose (Phil 3). I will warrant him, he that
seeth this, it will kill him to that which he was alive unto before,
though he had a thousand lives. Ah, sinners, sinners, were you but
sensible indeed of the severity and truth of this, it would make you
look about you to purpose! O, how would it make you strive to stop
at that that now you drink down with delight! How many oaths would
it make you bite asunder! Nay, it would make you bite your tongues
to think that they should be used as instruments of the devil to
bring your souls into such an unspeakable misery; then also we
should not have you hang the salvation of your souls upon such
slender pins as now you do; no, no; but you would be in another mind
then. O, then we should have you cry out, I must have Christ; what
shall I do for Christ? how shall I come at Christ? Would I was sure,
truly sure of Christ. My soul is gone, damned, cast away, and must
for ever burn with the devils, if I do not get precious Jesus
Christ!
3. In the next place, when God hath done
this, then He further shows the soul that that covenant which it is
under by nature is distinct from the Covenant of Grace; and also
they that are under it are by nature without any of the graces which
they have that are under the Covenant of Grace; as, (1.) That it
hath no faith (John 16:9). (2.) No hope (Eph 2:12). Nor none of the
Spirit to work these things in it by nature. (4.) Neither will that
covenant give to them any peace with God. (5.) No promise of
safeguard from His revenging law by that covenant. (6.) But lieth by
nature liable to all the curses, and condemnings, and thunderclaps
of this most fiery covenant. (7.) That it will accept of no sorrow,
no repentance, no satisfaction, as from thee. (8.) That it calls for
no less than the shedding of thy blood. (9.) The damnation of thy
soul and body. (10.) And if there be anything proffered to it by
thee, as to the making of it amends, it throws it back again as dirt
in thy face, slighting all that thou canst bring.
Now, when the soul is brought into this
condition, then it is indeed dead, killed to that to which it was
once alive. And therefore,
3. In the next place, to show you to what it
is killed: and that is,
1. To sin. O, it dares not sin! it sees
Hell-fire is prepared for them that sin, God's justice will not
spare it if it live in sin; the Law will damn it if it live in sin;
the devil will have it if it follows its sins. [Here I am speaking
of one that is effectually brought in]. O, I say, it trembles at the
very thoughts of sin! Ay, if sin do but offer to tempt the soul, to
draw away the soul from God, it cries, it sighs, it shunneth the
very appearance of sin, it is odious unto it. If God would but serve
you thus that love your pleasures, you would not make such a trifle
of sin as you do.
2. It is killed to the Law of God as it is
the Covenant of Works. O, saith the soul, the law hath killed me to
itself, "I through the law am dead to the law" (Gal 2:19). The law
is another thing than I did think it was. I thought it would not
have been so soul-destroying, so damning a law! I thought it would
not have been so severe against me for my little sins, for my
playing, for my jesting, for my dissembling, quarreling, and the
like. I had some thoughts, indeed, that it would hew great sinners,
but let me pass! and though it condemned great sinners, yet it would
pass me by! But now, would I were free from this covenant, would I
were free from this law! I will tell thee that a soul thus worked
upon is more afraid of the Covenant of Works than he is of the
devil; for he sees it is the law that doth give him up into his
hands for sin; and if he was but clear from that, he should not
greatly need to fear the devil. O, now every particular command
tears the caul of his heart; now every command is a great gun well
charged against his soul; now he sees he had as good run into a fire
to keep himself from burning, as to run to the law to keep himself
from damning; and this he sees really, ay, and feels it too, to his
own sorrow and perplexity. 14
3. The soul also now is killed to his own
righteousness, and counts that but dung, but dross, not worth the
dirt hanging on his shoes. O! then, says he, thou filthy
righteousness! how hast thou deceived me! How hast thou beguiled my
poor soul! (Isa 64:6). How did I deceive myself with giving of a
little alms; with abstaining from some gross pollutions; with
walking in some ordinances, as to the outside of them! How hath my
good words, good thinkings, good meanings, as the world calls them,
deceived my ignorant soul! I want the righteousness of faith, the
righteousness of God; for I see now there is no less will do me any
good.
4. It is also killed to its own faith, its
notion of the Gospel, its own hope, its own repentings, its own
promises and resolutions, to its own strength, its own virtue, or
whatsoever it had before. Now, saith the soul, that faith I thought
I had, it is but fancy; that hope I thought I had, I see it is by
hypocritical, but vain and groundless hope. [These things would be
too tedious to enlarge upon]. Now the soul sees it hath by nature no
saving faith, no saving hope, no grace at all by nature, by the
first covenant. Now it crieth out, How many promises have I broken!
and how many times have I resolved in vain, when I was sick at such
a time, and in such a strait at such a place! Indeed, I thought
myself a wise man once, but I see myself a very fool now. O, how
ignorant am I of the Gospel now, and of the blessed experience of
the work of God on a Christian heart! In a word, it sees itself
beset by nature with all evil, and destitute of all good, which is
enough to kill the stoutest, hardest-hearted sinner that ever lived
on the earth. O, friends, should you be plainly dealt withal by this
discovery of the dealing of God with a sinner when He makes him a
saint, and would seriously try your selves thereby, as God will try
you one day, how few would there be found of you to be so much as
acquainted with the work of God in the notion, much less in the
experimental knowledge of the same! And indeed, God is fain to take
this way with sinners, thus to kill them with the old covenant to
all things below a crucified Christ.
Six reasons of this discourse.
1. Because otherwise there would be none in
the world that would look after this sweet Jesus Christ. There are
but a few that go to Heaven in all, comparatively; and those few God
is fain to deal with them in this manner, or else His Heaven, His
Christ, His glory, and everlasting happiness must abide by
themselves, for all sinners. Do you think that Manasseh would have
regarded the Lord, had He not suffered his enemies to have prevailed
against him? (2 Chron 33:1-16). Do you think that Ephraim would have
looked after salvation, had not God first confounded him with the
guilt of the sins of his youth? (Jer 31:18). What do you think of
Paul? (Acts 9:4-6). What do you think of the jailer? (Acts
16:30-32). What do you think of the three thousand? (Acts 2:36,37).
Was not this the way that the Lord was fain to take to make them
close in with Jesus Christ? Was He not fain to kill them to
everything below a Christ, that were driven to their wits" ends,
insomuch that they were forced to cry out, "What shall we do to be
saved?" I say, God might have kept Heaven and happiness to Himself,
if He should not go this way to work with sinners. O stout-hearted
rebels! O tender-hearted God!
2. Because then, and not till then, will
sinners accept of Jesus Christ on God's terms. So long as sinners
can make a life out of anything below Christ, so long they will not
close with Christ without indenting; 15
But when the God of Heaven hath killed them
to everything below Himself and His Son, then Christ will down on
any terms in the world. And, indeed, this is the very reason why
sinners, when they hear of Christ, yet will not close in with Him;
there is something that they can take content in besides Him. The
prodigal, so long as he could content himself with the husks that
the swine did eat, so long he did keep him away from his father's
house; but when he could get no nourishment anywhere on this side of
his father's house, then saith he, and not till then, "I will arise,
and go to my father," etc.
I say, this is the reason, therefore, why men
come no faster, and close no more readily, with the Son of God, but
stand halting and indenting 16 about the terms they must have Christ
upon; for, saith the drunkard, I look on Christ to be worth the
having; but yet I am not willing to lose ALL for him; all but my
pot, saith the drunkard; and all but the world, saith the covetous.
I will part with anything but lust and pride, saith the wanton. But
if Christ will not be had without I forsake all, cast away all, then
it must be with me as it was with the young man in the Gospel, such
news will make me sorry at the very heart.
But now, when a man is soundly killed to all
his sins, to all his righteousness, to all his comforts whatsoever,
and sees that there is no way but the devil must leave him, but he
must be damned in Hell if he be not clothed with Jesus Christ; O,
then, saith he, give me Christ on any terms, whatsoever He cost;
though He cost me friends, though He cost me comforts, though He
cost me all that ever I have; yet, like the wise merchant in the
Gospel, they will sell all to get that pearl. I tell you, when a
soul is brought to see its want of Christ aright, it will not be
kept back; father, mother, husband, wife, lands, livings, nay, life
and all, shall go rather than the soul will miss of Christ. Ay, and
the soul counteth Christ a cheap Saviour if he can get him upon any
terms; now the soul indents17 no longer. Now, Lord, give me Christ
upon any terms, whatsoever He cost; for I am a dead man, a damned
man, a castaway, if I have not Christ. What say you, O you wounded
sinners? Is not this true as I have said? Would you not give ten
thousand worlds, if you had so many, so be you might be well assured
that your sins shall be pardoned, and your souls and bodies
justified and glorified at the coming of the Lord Jesus Christ?
3. The Lord goeth this way for this reason
also, that it might make the soul sensible what it cost Christ to
redeem it from death and Hell. When a man cometh to feel the sting
and guilt of sin, death and Hell upon his conscience, then, and not
till then, can he tell what it cost Christ to redeem sinners. O!
saith the soul, if a few sins are so terrible, and lay the soul
under such wrath and torment, what did Christ undergo, who bare the
sins of thousands and thousands, and all at once?
This also is one means to make souls tender
of sin (it is the burned child that feareth the fire), to make them
humble in a sense of their own vileness, to make them count
everything that God giveth them a mercy, to make much of the least
glimpse of the love of God, and to prize it above the whole world. O
sinners, were you killed indeed [to sin], then Heaven would be
Heaven, and Hell would be Hell indeed; but because you are not
wrought upon in this manner, therefore you count the ways of God as
bad as a good man counteth the ways of the devil, and the ways of
the devil and Hell as good as a saint doth count the ways of God.
4. Again, God is fain to go this way, and all
to make sinners make sure of Heaven. So long as souls are senseless
of sin, and what a damnable state they are in by nature, so long
they will even dally with the Kingdom of Heaven and the salvation of
their own poor souls; but when God cometh and showeth them where
they are, and what it is like to become of them if they miss of the
crucified Saviour, O, then, saith the soul, would I were sure of
Jesus; what shall I do to get assurance of Jesus? And thus is God
forced, as I may say, to whip souls to Jesus Christ, they being so
secure, so senseless, and so much their own enemies, as not to look
out after their own eternal advantage.
5. A fifth reason why God doth deal thus with
sinners it is, because He would bring Christ and the soul together
in a right way. Christ and sinners would never come together in a
beloved posture, they would not so suitably suit each other, if they
were not brought together this way, the sinner being killed. O, when
the sinner is killed, and indeed struck dead to everything below a
naked Jesus, how suitably then doth the soul and Christ suit one
with another. Then here is a naked sinner for a righteousness Jesus,
a poor sinner to a rich Jesus, a weak sinner to a strong Jesus, a
blind sinner to a seeing Jesus, an ignorant, careless sinner to a
wise and careful Jesus. O, how wise is God in dealing thus with the
sinner! He strips him of his own knowledge, that He may fill him
with Christ's; He killeth him for taking pleasure in sin, that he
may take pleasure in Jesus Christ, etc.
6. God goeth this way with sinners, because
He would have the glory of their salvation. Should not men and women
be killed to their own things, they would do sacrifice unto them,
and instead of saying to the Lamb, "THOU ART WORTHY," they would say
their own arm, their own right hand hath saved them; but God will
cut off boasting from ever entering within the borders of eternal
glory; for He is resolved to have the glory of the beginning, the
middle, and the end; of the contriving, and saving, and giving
salvation to them that enter in to the joys of everlasting glory
(Rom 3:27; Eph 2:8,9; Titus 3:5; Rev 5:9). "That they might be
called trees of righteousness, the planting of the LORD, that He
might be glorified" (Isa 61:3). I might have run through many things
as to this; but I shall pass them, and proceed.
Second. Now, the soul being this killed to
itself, [The soul that hath the right work of God upon its heart, is
not only killed to itself, but also made alive to Christ]. its sins,
its righteousness, faith, hope, wisdom, promises, resolutions, and
the rest of its things which it trusted in by nature; in the next
place, it hath also given unto it a most glorious, perfect, and
never-fading life, which is-
1. A life imputed to it, yet so really, that
the very thought of it in the soul hath so much operation and
authority, especially when the mediation of it is mixed with faith,
as to make it, though condemned by the law, to triumph, and to look
its enemies in the face with comfort, notwithstanding the greatness
of the multitude, the fierceness of their anger, and the
continuation of their malice, be never so hot against it.
This imputed life-for so it is-is the
obedience of the Son of God as His righteousness, in His suffering,
rising, ascending, interceding, and so consequently triumphing over
all the enemies of the soul, and given to me, as being wrought on
purpose for me. So that, is there righteousness in Christ? that is
mine. Is there perfection in that righteousness? that is mine. Did
He bleed for sin? it was for mine. Hath He overcome the law, the
devil, and Hell? the victory is mine, and I am counted the
conqueror, nay, more than a conqueror, through Him that hath loved
me. And I do count this a most glorious life; for by this means it
is that I am, in the first place, proclaimed both in Heaven and
earth guiltless, and such an one who, as I am in Christ, am not
sinner, and so not under the law, to be condemned, but as holy and
righteous as the Son of God Himself, because He Himself is my
holiness and righteousness, and so likewise having by this all
things taken out of the way that would condemn me.
Sometimes I bless the Lord my soul hath had
the life that now I am speaking of, not only imputed to me, but the
very glory of it upon my soul; for, upon a time, when I was under
many condemnings of heart, and feared, because of my sins, my soul
would miss of eternal glory, methought I felt in my soul such a
secret motion of this-Thy righteousness is in Heaven, together with
the splendour and shining of the Spirit of Grace in my soul, which
gave me to see clearly that my righteousness by which I should be
justified from all that could condemn, was the Son of God Himself in
His own Person, now at the right hand of His Father representing me
complete before the Mercy-seat in His Ownself; so that I saw clearly
that night and day, wherever I was, or whatever I was a doing, still
there was my righteousness just before the eyes of Divine glory; so
that the Father could never find fault with me for any insufficiency
that was in my righteousness, seeing it was complete; neither could
He say, Where is it? because it was continually at His right hand.
18
Also, at another time, having contracted
guilt upon my soul, and having some distemper of body upon me, I
supposed that death might now so seize upon as to take me away from
among men; then, thought I, what shall I do now? is all right with
my soul? Have I the right work of God on my soul? Answering myself,
"No, surely"; and that because there were so many weaknesses in me;
yes, so many weaknesses in my best duties. For, thought I, how can
such an one as I find mercy, whose heart is so ready to evil, and so
backward to that which is good, so far as it is natural. Thus
musing, being filled with fear to die, these words come in upon my
soul, "Being justified freely by His grace through the redemption
that is in Christ Jesus" (Rom 3:24). As if God had said, Sinner,
thou thinkest because that thou hast had so many infirmities and
weaknesses in thy soul while thou hast been professing of Me,
therefore now there can be no hopes of mercy; but be it known unto
thee, that it was not anything done by thee at the first that moved
Me to have mercy upon thee: neither is it anything that is done by
thee now that shall make me either accept or reject thee. Behold My
Son, who standeth by Me, He is righteous, He hath fulfilled My Law,
and given me good satisfaction; on Him, therefore, do I look, and on
thee only as thou art in Him; and according to what He hath done, so
will I deal with thee. This having stayed my heart, and taken off
the guilt through the strength of its coming on my soul, anon after
came in that word as a second testimony-"Who hath saved us, and
called us with an holy calling, not according to our works," of
righteousness which we have done, "but according to His own purpose
and grace, which was given us in Christ Jesus before the world
began" (2 Tim 1:9). And thus is the sinner made alive from the dead,
being justified by grace through the righteousness of Christ, which
is unto all and upon all them that believe, according to the
Scriptures-"And the life which I now live-it is "by the faith of the
Son of God, who loved me, and gave Himself for me" (Gal 2:20). "I
lay down my life for the sheep." "I am come that they might have
life, and that they might have it more abundantly" (John 10:10,15).
"For if, when we were enemies, we were reconciled to God by the
death of His Son, much more, being reconciled, we shall be saved by
His life. That as sin hath reigned unto death, even so might grace
reign through righteousness unto eternal life by Jesus Christ our
Lord" (Rom 5:10,21).
2. This life is not only imputed to him that
is wrought on by the Spirit of Grace-that is, not only counted his,
but also there is put into the soul an understanding, enlightened on
purpose to know the things of God, which is Christ and His imputed
righteousness (1 John 5:20) which it never thought of nor understood
before (1 Cor 2:9-11). Which understanding being enlightened and
made to see such things that the soul cannot be contented without it
lay hold of and apply Christ unto itself so effectually; I say, that
the soul shall be exceedingly revived in a very heavenly measure
with the application of this imputed righteousness; for thereby it
knoweth it shall find God speaking peace to itself, with a fatherly
affection, saying, "Be of good cheer, thy sins are forgiven thee";
the righteousness of My Son I bestow upon thee; "For what the law
could not do, in that it was weak through thee," thy "flesh," "I
have sent forth My only Son, and have condemned" thy sins in His
flesh (Rom 8:3). And though thou hast gone astray like a lost sheep,
yet on Him I have laid thine iniquities; and though thou thereby
didst undo and break thyself for ever, yet by His stripes I have
healed thee. Thus, I say, the Lord causeth the soul by faith to
apply that which He doth by grace impute unto it, for thus every
soul more or less is dealt withal; the soul being thus enlightened,
thus quickened, thus made alive from that dead state it was in
before, or at least having the beginnings of this life, it hath
these several virtuous advantages, which they have not that are dead
in their sins and trespasses, and under the law-
[Advantages possessed by the quickened].
First. It seeth what a sad condition all men
by nature are in, they being in that state which itself was in but a
while since; but now by grace it is a beginning to scrabble 19 out
of it; now it seeth "the whole world lieth in wickedness," and so
liable to eternal vengeance, because of their wickedness (1 John
5:19). Ah, friends, let me tell you, though you may be ignorant of
your state and condition, yet the poor, groaning, hungering saints
of God do see what a sad, woeful, miserable state you are in, which
sometimes makes them tremble to think of your most lamentable latter
end, your dying so, and also to fly the faster to their Lord Jesus,
for very fear that they also should be partakers of that most
doleful doom. [Like as the children of Israel, who fled for fear
when the ground opened its mouth to swallow up Korah and his
company]. And this it hath by virtue of its own experience, knowing
itself was but awhile ago in the same condition, under the same
condemnation. O! there is now a hearth blessing of God that ever He
should show to it its sad condition, and that He should incline its
heart to seek after a better condition. O blessed be the Lord! saith
the soul, that ever He should awaken me, stir up me, and bring me
out of that sad condition that I once with them was in (Psa
103:1-3). It makes also the soul to wonder to see how foolishly and
vainly the rest of its neighbours do spend their precious time, that
they should be so void of understanding, so forgetful of their
latter end, so senseless of the damning nature of their sins. O that
their eyes were but enlightened to see whereabouts they are! surely
they would be of another mind than they are now in. Now, the soul
wonders to see what slender pins those poor creatures do hang the
stress of the eternal salvation of their souls upon. O! methinks,
saith the soul, it makes me mourn to see that some should think that
they were born Christians; and others, that their baptism makes them
so; 20 others depend barely upon a traditional, historical faith,
which will leave their souls in the midst of perplexity. That they
should trust to such fables, fancies, and wicked sleights of the
devil, as their good doings, their good thinkings, their civil
walking and living with the world. O miserable profession, and the
end thereof will be a miserable end!
But now, when the souls is thus wrought upon,
it must be sure to look for the very gates of Hell to be set open
against it with all their force and might to destroy it. Now Hell
rageth, the devil roareth, and all the world resolveth to do the
best they can to bring the soul again into bondage and ruin. Also,
the soul shall not want enemies, even in its own heart's lust, [But
this is but for the exercise of his faith.] as covetousness,
adultery, blasphemy, unbelief, hardness of heart, coldness,
half-heartedness, ignorance, with an innumerable company of
attendants, hanging, like so many blocks, at its heels, ready to
sink it into the fire of Hell every moment, together with strange
apprehensions of God and Christ, as if now they were absolutely
turned to be its enemies, which maketh it doubt of the certainty of
its salvation; for you must understand, that though a soul may in
reality have the righteousness of the Son of God imputed to it, and
also some faith in a very strong manner to lay hold upon it, yet at
another time, through temptation, they may fear and doubt again,
insomuch that the soul may be put into a very great fear lest it
should return again into the condition it once was in (Jer 32:40).
O, saith the soul, when I think of my former state, how miserable it
was, it makes me tremble; and when I think that I may fall into that
condition again, how sad are the thoughts of it to me! I would not
be in that condition again for all the world. And this fear riseth
still higher and higher, as the soul is sensible of Satan's
temptations, or of the working of its own corruptions. Ah! these
filthy lusts, these filthy corruptions. O that I were rid of them,
that they were consumed in a moment, that I could be quite rid of
them, they do so disturb my soul, dishonour my God, so defile my
conscience, and sometimes so weaken my hands in the way of God, and
my comforts in the Lord; O how glad should I be if I might be
stripped of them (Rom 7:24). Which fear puts the soul upon flying to
the Lord by prayer for the covering of His imputed righteousness,
and for strength against the devil's temptations and its own
corruptions; that God would give down His Holy Spirit to strengthen
it against the things that do so annoy its soul, and so discourage
it in its way, with a resolution, through grace, never to be
contented while [until] it doth find in itself a triumphing over it,
by faith in the blood of a crucified Jesus.
Second. The soul that hath been thus killed
by the Law to the things it formerly delighted in, now, O now, it
cannot be contented with that slender, groundless faith and hope
that once it contented itself withal. No, no; but now it must be
brought into the right saving knowledge of Jesus Christ, now it must
have Him discovered to the soul by the Spirit, now it cannot be
satisfied because such and such do tell it is so. No; but now it
will cry out, Lord, show me continually, in the light of Thy Spirit,
through Thy Word, that Jesus that was born in the days of Caesar
Augustus, when Mary, a daughter of Judah, went with Joseph to be
taxed at Bethlehem, that He is the very Christ. Lord, let me see it
in the light of Thy Spirit, and in the operation thereof; and let me
not be contented without such a faith that is so wrought even by the
discovery of His birth, crucifying, death, blood, resurrection,
ascension, intercession, and second-which is His personal-coming
again, that the very faith of it may fill my soul with comfort and
holiness. And O, how afraid the soul is lest it should fall short of
this faith, and of the hope that is begotten by such discoveries as
these are! For the soul knoweth that if it hath not this, it will
not be able to stand either in death or judgment; and therefore,
saith the soul, Lord, whatever other poor souls content themselves
withal, let me have that which will stand me in stead, and carry me
through a dangerous world; that may help me to resist a cunning
devil; that may help me to suck true soul-satisfying consolation
from Jesus Christ through Thy promises, by the might and power of
Thy Spirit. And now, when the poor soul at any time hath any
discovery of the love of God through a bleeding, dying, risen,
interceding Jesus, because it is not willing to be deceived, O, how
wary [But this may be its temptation, taking place through the
timorousness of the soul]. is it of closing with it, for fear it
should not be right, for fear it should not come from God! Saith the
soul, Cannot the devil give one such comfort I trow? Cannot he
transform himself thus into an angel of light? So that the soul,
because that it would be upon a sure ground, cries out, Lord, show
me Thy salvation, and that not once or twice, but, Lord, let me have
Thy presence continually upon my heart, today, and tomorrow, and
every day. For the soul, when it is rightly brought from under the
Covenant of Works, and planted into the Covenant of Grace, then it
cannot be, unless it be under some desperate temptation, contented
without the presence of God, teaching, comforting, establishing, and
helping of the soul to grow in the things of the Lord Jesus Christ;
because it knoweth that if God hath but withdrawn His presence in
any way from it, as He doth do sometimes for a while, that then the
devil will be sure to be near at hand, working with his temptations,
trying all ways to get the soul into slavery and sin again; also the
corrupt principle, that will be joining and combining with the
Wicked One, and will be willing to be a co-partner with him to bring
the soul into mischief; which puts a soul upon an earnest, continual
panting after more of the strengthening, preserving, comforting, and
teaching presence of God, and for strong supplies of faith, that it
may effectually lay hold on him.
Third. The soul is quickened so that it is
not satisfied now without it do in deed and in truth partake of the
peace of God's elect; now it is upon the examination of the reality
of its joy and peace. Time was indeed that anything would serve its
turn, any false conceits of its state to be good; but now all kind
of peace will not serve its turn, all kind of joy will not be
accepted with it; now it must joy in God through Jesus Christ; now
its peace must come through the virtues of the blood of Christ
speaking peace to the conscience by taking away both the guilt and
filth of sin by that blood; also by showing the soul its free
acceptance with God through Christ, He hath completely fulfilled all
the conditions of the first covenant, and freely placed it into the
safety of what He hath done, and so presents the soul complete and
spotless in the sight of God through His obedience. Now, I say, he
hath "peace through the blood of His Cross," and sees himself
reconciled to God by the death of His Son, or else his comfort will
be questioned by him (Col 1:20,21). It is not every promise as
cometh now upon his heart that will serve his turn, no, but he must
see whether the babe Jesus be presented to the soul in and through
that promise. Now if the babe leap in his womb, as I may so say, it
is because the Lord's promise sounds aloud in his heart, coming to
him big with the love and pardoning grace of God in Jesus Christ; I
say, this is the first and principal joy that the soul hath that is
quickened and brought into the Covenant of Grace.
Fourth. Now the man finds heavenly
sanctification wrought in his soul through the most precious blood
of the Man whose name is Jesus Christ-"Jesus, that He might sanctify
the people with His own blood, suffered without the gate." Now the
souls finds a change in the understanding, in the will, in the mind,
in the affections, in the judgment, and also in the conscience;
through the inward man a change, and through the outward man a
change, from head to foot, as we use to say, "for he that is in
Christ," and so in this Covenant of Grace, "is a new creature," or
hath been twice made-made, and made again (2 Cor 5:17). O, now the
soul is resolved for Heaven and Glory; now it crieth out, Lord, if
there be a right eye that is offensive to Thee, pluck it out; or a
right foot, cut it off; or a right hand, take it from me. Now the
soul doth begin to study how it may honour God, and bring praise to
Him. Now the soul is for a preparation for the second coming of
Christ, endeavouring to lay aside everything that may hinder; and
for the closing in with those things that may make it in a beloved
posture against that day.
Fifth. And all this is from a Gospel spirit,
and not from a legal, natural principle, for the soul hath these
things as the fruits and effects of its being separated unto the
Covenant of Grace, and so now possessed with that Spirit that doth
attend, yea, and dwell in them that are brought into the Covenant of
Grace from under the old covenant; I say, these things do spring
forth in the soul from another root and stock than any of the
actings of other men do; for the soul that is thus wrought upon is
as well dead to the law and the righteousness thereof-as the first
covenant-as well as to its sins.
Sixth. Now the soul begins to have some
blessed experience of the things of God, even of the glorious
mysteries of the Gospel.
1. Now it knoweth the meaning of those words,
"My flesh is meat indeed, and My blood is drink, indeed," and that
by experience; for the soul hath received peace of conscience
through that blood, by the effectual application of it to the soul
(John 6:55). First, by feeling the guilt of sin die off from the
conscience by the operation thereof. Secondly, By feeling the power
thereof to take away the curse of the law. Thirdly, By finding the
very strength of Hell to fail when once the blood of that Man Jesus
Christ is received in reality upon the soul.
2. Now the soul also knoweth by experience
the meaning of that Scripture that saith, "Our old man is crucified
with Him, that the body of sin might be destroyed" (Rom 6:6). Now it
sees that when the Man Jesus did hang on the tree on Mount Calvary,
that then the body of its sins was there hanged up, dead and buried
with Him, though it was then unborn, so as never to be laid to its
charge, either here or hereafter; and also, so as never to carry it
captive into perpetual bondage, being itself overcome by Him, even
Christ, the Head of that poor creature. And indeed this is the way
for a soul both to live comfortably as touching the guilt of sin,
and also as touching the power of the filth of sin; for the soul
that doth or hath received this in deed and in truth, finds strength
against them both by and through that Man that did for him and the
rest of his fellow-sinners so gloriously overcome it, and hath given
the victory unto them, so that now they are said to be overcomers,
nay, "more than conquerors through Him," the one Man Jesus Christ
(Rom 7:33-37).
3. Now the soul hath received a faith indeed,
and a lively hope indeed, such an one as now it can fetch strength
from the fullness of Christ, and from the merits of Christ.
4. Yea, now the soul can look on itself with
one eye, and look upon Christ with another, and say, Indeed, it is
true; I am an empty soul, but Christ is a full Christ; I am a poor
sinner, but Christ is a rich Christ; I am a foolish sinner, but
Christ is a wise Christ; I am an unholy, ungodly, unsanctified
creature in myself, but Christ is made of God "unto me, wisdom, and
righteousness, and sanctification, and redemption" (1 Cor 1:30).
5. Now also that fiery law, that it could not
once endure, nor could not once delight in, I say, now it can
delight in it after the inward man; now this law is its delight, it
would always be walking in it, and always be delighting in it, being
offended with any sin or any corruption that would be anyways an
hinderance to it (Rom 7:24,25). And yet it will not abide, it will
not endure that that, even that that law should offer to take the
work of its salvation out of Christ's hand; no, if it once comes to
do that, then out of doors it shall go, if it were as good again.
For that soul that hath the right work of God indeed upon it, cries,
Not my prayers, not my tears, not my works, not my things, do they
come from the work of the Spirit of Christ itself within me, yet
these shall not have the glory of my salvation; no, it is none but
the blood of Christ, the death of Christ, of the Man Christ Jesus of
Nazareth, the carpenter's son, as they called Him, that must have
the crown and glory of my salvation. None but Christ, none but
Christ. And thus the soul labours to give Christ the preeminence
(Col 1:18).
[A WORD OF EXPERIENCE.]
Now, before I go any further, I must
needs speak a word from my own experience of the things of Christ;
and the rather, because we have a company of silly ones in this day
of ignorance that do either comfort themselves with a notion without
the power, or else do both reject the notion and the power of this
most glorious Gospel; therefore, for the further conviction of the
reader, I shall tell him, with David, something of what the Lord
hath done for my soul; and indeed a little of the experience of the
things of Christ is far more worth than all the world. It would be
too tedious for me to tell thee here all from the first to the last;
but something I shall tell thee, that thou mayest not think these
things are fables. [This conviction seized on my soul one Sabbath
day, when I was at play, being one of the first that I had, which
when it came, though it scared me with its terror, yet through the
temptation of the devil, immediately striking in therewith, I did
rub it off again, and became as vile for some time as I was before,
like a wretch that I was]. 21
Reader, when it pleased the Lord to begin to
instruct my soul, He found me one of the black sinners of the world;
He found me making a sport of oaths, and also of lies; and many a
soul-poisoning meal did I make out of divers lusts, as drinking,
dancing, playing, pleasure with the wicked ones of the world. The
Lord finding of me in this condition, did open the glass of His Law
unto me, wherein He showed me so clearly my sins, both the greatness
of them, and also how abominable they were in His sight, that I
thought the very clouds were charged with the wrath of God, and
ready to let fall the very fire of His jealousy upon me; yet for all
this I was so wedded to my sin, that, thought I with myself, I will
have them though I lose my soul, (O wicked wretch that I was!) but
God, the great, the rich, the infinite merciful God, did not take
this advantage of my soul to cast me away, and say, Then take him,
Devil, seeing he cares for Me no more; no, but He followed me still,
and won upon my heart, by giving me some understanding, not only
into my miserable state, which I was very sensible of, but also that
there might be hopes of mercy; also taking away that love to lust,
and placing in the room thereof a love to religion; and thus the
Lord won over my heart to some desire after the means, to hear the
Word, and to grow a stranger to my old companions, and to accompany
the people of God, together with giving of me many sweet
encouragements from several promises in the Scriptures. But after
this, the Lord did wonderfully set my sins upon my conscience, those
sins especially that I had committed since the first convictions;
temptations also followed me very hard, and especially such
temptations as did tend to the making me question of the very way of
salvation-viz., whether Jesus Christ was the Saviour or no; and
whether I had best to venture my soul upon His blood for salvation,
or take some other course. But being through grace kept close with
God, in some measure, in prayer and the rest of the ordinances, but
went about a year and upwards without any sound evidence as from God
to my soul touching the salvation that comes by Jesus Christ. But,
at the last, as I may say, when the set time was come, the Lord,
just before the men called Quakers came into the country, did set me
down so blessedly in the truth of the doctrine of Jesus Christ, that
it made me marvel to see, first, how Jesus Christ was born of a
virgin, walked in the world awhile with His disciples, afterwards
hanged on the Cross, spilt His blood, was buried, rose again,
ascended above the clouds and heavens, there lives to make
intercession, and that He also will come again at the last day to
judge the world, and take His saints unto Himself.
These things, I say, I did see so evidently,
even as if I had stood when He was in the world, and also when He
was caught up. I having such a change as this upon my soul, it made
me wonder; and musing with myself at the great alteration that was
in my spirit-for the Lord did also very gloriously give me in His
precious Word to back the discovery of the Son of God unto me, so
that I can say, through grace, it was according to the Scriptures (1
Cor 15:1-4). And as I was musing with myself what these things
should mean, methought I heard such a word in my heart as this-I
have set thee down on purpose, for I have something more than
ordinary for thee to do; which made me the more marvel, saying,
What, my Lord, such a poor wretch as I? Yet still this continued, I
have set thee down on purpose, and so forth, with more fresh incomes
of the Lord Jesus, and the power of the blood of His Cross upon my
soul, even so evidently that I saw, through grace, that it was the
blood shed on Mount Calvary that did save and redeem sinners, as
clearly and as really with the eyes of my soul as ever, me thought,
I had seen a penny loaf bought with a penny; which things then
discovered had such operation upon my soul, that I do hope they did
sweetly season every faculty thereof. Reader, I speak in the
presence of God, and He knows I lie not; much of this, and such like
dealings of His, could I tell thee of; but my business at this time
is not so to do, but only to tell what operation the blood of Christ
hath had over and upon my conscience, and that at several times, and
also when I have been in several frames of spirit.
As, first, sometimes, I have been so loaden
with my sins, that I could not tell where to rest, nor what to do;
yea, at such times I thought it would have taken away my senses; yet
at that time God through grace hath all of a sudden so effectually
applied the blood that was spilt at Mount Calvary out of the side of
Jesus, unto my poor, wounded, guilty conscience, that presently I
have found such a sweet, solid, sober, heart-comforting peace, that
it hath made me as if it [my terror] had not been, and withal the
same, I may say, and I ought to say, the power of it, hath had such
a powerful operation upon my soul, that I have for a time been in a
strait and trouble to think that I should love and honour Him no
more, the virtue of His blood hath so constrained me.
Again; sometimes methinks my sins have
appeared so big to me that I thought one of my sins have been as big
as all the sins of all the men in the nation; ay, and of other
nations too, reader; these things be not fancies, for I have smarted
for this experience, but yet the least stream of the heart blood of
this Man 22 Jesus hath vanished all away, and hath made it to fly,
to the astonishment of such a poor sinner; and as I said before,
hath delivered me up into sweet and heavenly peace and joy in the
Holy Spirit.
Again; sometimes when my heart hath been
hard, dead, slothful, blind, and senseless, which indeed are sad
frames for a poor Christian to be in, yet at such a time, when I
have been is such a case, then hath the blood of Christ, the
precious blood of Christ, the admirable blood of the God of Heaven,
that run out of His body when it did hang on the Cross, so softened,
livened, quickened, and enlightened my soul, that truly, reader, I
can say, O it makes me wonder!
Again; when I have been loaden with sin, and
[I cannot stand here to tell thee of particular temptations].
pestered with several temptations, and in a very sad manner, then
have I had the trial of the virtue of Christ's blood with the trial
of the virtue of other things; and I have found that when tears
would not do, prayers would not do, repentings and all other things
could not reach my heart; O then, one touch, one drop, one shining
of the virtue of the blood, of that blood that was let out with the
spear, it hath in a very blessed manner delivered me, that it hath
made me to marvel. O! methinks it hath come with such life, such
power, with such irresistible and marvelous glory, that it wipes off
all the slurs, silences all the outcries, and quenches all the fiery
darts, and all the flames of Hell-fire, that are begotten by the
charges of the Law, Satan, and doubtful remembrances of my sinful
life.
Friends, as Peter saith to the church, so I
say to you, I have not preached to you cunningly devised fables in
telling you of the blood of Christ, and what authority it hath had
upon my conscience; O no, but as Peter saith touching the coming of
the Lord Jesus into the world, so in some measure I can say of the
blood of the Lord Jesus Christ that was shed when He did come into
the world. There is not only my single testimony touching this; no,
but there are all the Prophets do agree in advancing this in
writing, and also all the saints do now declare the same, in
speaking forth the amiableness and many powerful virtues thereof.
"As for Thee also, by the blood of Thy covenant," saith God to
Christ, "I have sent forth Thy prisoners out of the pit wherein is
no water" (Zech 9:11). "We have redemption through His blood" (Eph
1:7). Again, "We have redemption through His blood" (Col 1:14). Our
robes are washed and made "white in the blood of the Lamb" (Rev
7:14). The devil is overcome through "the blood of the Lamb" (Rev
12:11). Yea, and conscience is purged, too, and that through the
blood of the Lamb (Heb 9:14). We have free recourse to the Throne of
Grace through the blood of Jesus (Heb 10:19). I could bring thee a
cloud of witnesses out of all the types and shadows, and out of the
sundry Prophets, and much more out of the New Testament, but I
forebear, because I would not be too tedious to the reader in making
too large a digression, though I have committed here in this
discourse no transgression, for the blood of Christ is precious
blood (1 Peter 1:18,19).
[THIRD. THE PRIVILEGES OF THE NEW COVENANT.]
In the next place, I shall show you the
several privileges and advantages that the man or woman hath that is
under this Covenant of Grace, over what they have that are under the
Covenant of the Law and Works. As,
First. The Covenant of Grace is not grounded
upon our obedience, but upon God's love, even His pardoning love to
us through Christ Jesus. The first covenant is stood to be broken or
kept by us, and God's love or anger to be lost or enjoyed thereafter
as we, as creatures, behaved ourselves; but now, the very ground of
the Covenant of Grace is God's love, His mere love through Jesus
Christ-"The LORD did not set His love upon you, nor choose you,
because ye were more in number than any people; for ye were the
fewest of all people: but because the LORD loved you, and because He
would keep the oath which He had sworn unto your fathers" (Deu
7:7,8). Again, "In His love and in His pity He redeemed them," "and
the angel of His presence saved them," that is, Jesus Christ (Isa
63:9). And again, "Who hath saved us-not according to our works" of
righteousness which we have done, "but according to His own purpose
and grace, which was given us in Christ Jesus before the world
began" (2 Tim 1:9).
Second. This love is not conveyed to us
through what we have done, as is before proved, but through what He
hath done with Whom the covenant was made, which was given us in
Christ-According as He hath chosen us in Christ. "Who hath blessed
us with all spiritual blessings in heavenly places in Christ." "God
for Christ's sake hath forgiven you," that is, through Christ's
doings, through Christ's sufferings (2 Tim 1:9; Eph 1:3,4; 4:32).
Now if this be but rightly understood, it doth discover abundance of
comfort to them, that are within the bounds of the Covenant of
Grace. For,
1. Here a believer seeth he shall stand, if
Christ's doings and sufferings stand; which is sure foundation, for
God dealeth with him through Christ. And so, secondly, he shall not
fall, unless the suffering and merits of Christ be thrown over the
bar, being found guilty, which will never be, before the eyes of
Divine justice; for with Him the covenant was made, and He was the
Surety of it; that is, as the covenant was made with Him, so He
stood bound to fulfill the same (Zech 9:11; Heb 7:22). For you must
understand that the covenant was made between the Father and the Son
long before it was accomplished, or manifestly sealed with Christ's
blood; it was made before the world began (Titus 1:2; Eph 1:4; 1
Peter 1:18-20). But the conditions thereof were not fulfilled until
less than two thousand years ago; and all that while did Jesus stand
bound as a surety, as I said before, is used to do, till the time in
which the payment should be made. And it was by virtue of His
Suretyship, having bound Himself by covenant to do all things agreed
on by the Father and Him, that all those of the election that were
born before He came, that they might be saved, and did enter into
rest. For the forgiveness of sins that were past, though it was
through the blood of Christ, yet it was also through the forbearance
of God (Rom 3:25). That is, Christ becoming Surety for those that
died before His coming, that He should in deed and in truth, at the
fullness of time, or at the time appointed, give a complete and full
satisfaction for them according to the tenor or condition of the
covenant. (Gal 4:4). Again,
2. The second covenant, which believers are
under, as the ground and foundation, if it is safe, so the promises
thereof are better, surer, freer, and fuller, etc.
(1.) They are better, if you compare the
excellency of the one with the excellency of the other. The first
hath promised nothing but an early paradise-Do this, and thou shalt
live; namely, here in an earthly paradise. But the other doth bring
the promise of a heavenly paradise.
(2.) As the Covenant of Works doth promise an
earthly paradise, yet it is a paradise or blessing, though once
obtained, yet might be lost again; for no longer than thou doest
well, no longer art thou blessed by that. O, but the promises in the
new covenant do bring unto us the benefit of an eternal
inheritance-That "they which are called might receive the promise of
eternal inheritance." O rare! it is an "eternal inheritance" (Heb
9:15).
(3.) The other, as it is not so good as this,
so neither is it so sure as this; and therefore he calls the one
such an one as might be, and was, shaken, but this is said to be
such an one that cannot be shaken. "And this Word," saith he,
treating of the two covenants from verse the 8th to the 24th-"And
this Word, yet once more, signifieth the removing of those things
that are," or may be, "shaken, as of things that are made, that
those things which cannot be shaken," which is the second covenant,
"may remain," (Heb 12:27); for, saith he (verse 28) "which cannot be
moved." Therefore, ye blessed saints, seeing you have received a
kingdom "which cannot be moved," therefore, "let us have grace,
whereby we may serve" our "God acceptably with reverence and godly
fear."
Thus in general, but more particularly.
(4.) They are surer, in that they are founded
upon God's love also, and they come to us without calling for those
things at our hands that may be a means of putting of a stop to our
certain enjoying of them. The promises under, or for the law, they
might easily be stopped by our disobedience; but the promises under
the Gospel say, "If Heaven above can be measured, and the
foundations of the earth searched," then, and not till then, "I will
also cast off all the seed of Israel for all that they have done"
(Jer 31:37). Again, "I, even I, am He that blotteth out thy
transgressions for Mine own" name's "sake, and will not remember thy
sins" (Isa 43:25). I will make thee a partaker of My promise; and
that I may so do, I will take away that which would hinder; "I will
cast all their sins into the depths of the sea," that My promise may
be sure to all the seed; and therefore, saith the Apostle, when he
would show us that the new-covenant promises were more sure than the
old, he tells us plainly that the law and works are set aside and
they are merely made ours through the righteousness of faith, which
is the righteousness of Christ-"For the promise, that he [Abraham]
should be the heir of the world," saith he, "was not to Abraham, or
to his seed, through the law," or works, "but through the
righteousness of faith. For if they which are of the law," or of
works, "be heirs," then "faith is made void, and the promise made of
none effect. Therefore it is of faith-to the end the promise might
be sure to all the seed" (Rom 4:13-14,16).
(5.) Surer, because that as that is taken
away that should hinder, so they are committed to a faithful Friend
of ours in keeping. For all the promises of God are in Christ, not
yea and nay, but yea and amen; certain and sure; sure, because they
are in the hand of our Head, our Friend, our Brother, our Husband,
our flesh and bones, even in the heart and hand of our precious
Jesus.
(6.) Because all the conditions of them are
already fulfilled for us by Jesus Christ, as aforesaid; every
promise that is a new-covenant promise, if there be any condition in
it, our Undertaker hath accomplished that for us, and also giveth us
such grace as to receive the sweetness as doth spring from them
through His obedience to every thing required in them.
(7.) Surer, because that as they are grounded
upon the love of God, everything is taken out of the way, in the
hand of a sure Friend. And has Christ has fulfilled every condition
as to justification that is contained therein, so the Lord hath
solemnly sworn with an oath for our better confidence in this
particular-"For when God made promise to Abraham," and so to all the
saints, "because He could swear by no greater, He sware by Himself,
saying, Surely, blessing I will bless thee, and multiplying I will
multiply thee. And so, after he had patiently endured, he obtained
the promise. For men verily swear by the greater: and an oath for
confirmation is to them an end of all strife," that there might be
no more doubt or scruple concerning the certain fulfilling of the
promise. "Wherein God, willing more abundantly to show unto the
heirs of promise the immutability of His counsel," or certain,
constant, unchangeable decree of God in making of the promise, for
the comfort of his children, "confirmed it by an oath: that by two
immutable things," His promise backed with an oath, "in which it was
impossible for God to lie, we might have a strong consolation, who
have fled for refuge to lay hold upon the hope set before us" (Heb
6:13-18).
(8.) That they are better it appears also in
that they are freer and fuller. That they are freer, it is evident,
in that one saith, No works, no life-Do this, and then thou shalt
live; if not, thou shalt be damned. But the other saith, We are
saved by believing in what Another hath done, without the works of
the Law-"Now to him that worketh not, but believeth on Him that
justifieth the ungodly, his faith is counted for righteousness" (Rom
4:4,5). The one saith, Pay me that thou owest; the other say, I do
frankly and freely forgive thee all. The one saith, Because thou
hast sinned, thou shalt die; the other saith, Because Christ lives,
thou shalt live also (John 15).
(9.) And as they are freer, so they are
fuller; fuller of encouragement, fuller of comfort; the one, to wit,
the law, looks like Pharaoh's seven ill-favoured kine, more ready to
eat one up than to afford us any food; the other is like the full
grape in the cluster, which for certain hath a glorious blessing in
it. The one saith, If thou hast sinned, turn again; the other saith,
If thou hast sinned, thou shalt be damned, for all I have a promise
in me.
3. They that are of the second are better
than they that are of the first; and it also appeareth in this-The
promises of the Law, through them we have neither faith, nor hope,
nor the Spirit conveyed; but through the promises of the Gospel
there are all these-"Whereby are given unto us exceeding great and
precious promises, that by these we might be partakers of the Divine
nature" (2 Peter 1:4). O therefore "let us hold fast the profession
of our faith without wavering; for He is faithful that promised"
(Heb 10:23). "In hope of eternal life," how so? because "God, that
cannot lie, promised it before the world began" (Titus 1:2).
4. They that are in this covenant are in a
very happy state; for though there be several conditions in the
Gospel to be done, yet Christ Jesus doth not look that they should
be done by man, as man, but by His own Spirit in them, as it is
written, "Thou hast wrought all our works in us." Is there that
condition, they must believe? Why, then, He will be both the "author
and finisher of their faith" (Heb 12:2,3). Is there also hope to be
in His children? He also doth and hath given them "good hope through
His grace" (2 Thess 2:16). Again, are the people of God to behave
themselves to the glory of God the Father? then He will work in them
"both to will and to do of His own good pleasure" (Phil 2:13).
5. Again, as He works all our works in us and
for us, so also by virtue of this covenant we have another nature
given unto us, whereby, or by which we are made willing to be
glorifying of God, both in our bodies and in our spirits, which are
His-"Thy people shall be willing in the day of Thy power" (1 Cor
6:20; Psa 110:3).
6. In the next place, all those that are
under this second covenant are in a wonderful safe condition; for in
case they should slip or fall after their conversion into some sin
or sins (for who lives and sins not? (Prov 24:16), yet through the
merits and intercession of Christ Jesus, who is their Undertaker in
this covenant, they shall have their sins pardoned, their wounds
healed, and they raised up again; which privilege the children of
the first covenant have not; for if they sin, they are never
afterwards regarded by that covenant-They brake My covenant and I
regarded them not, saith the Lord (Heb 8:9). But when He comes to
speak of the Covenant of Grace, speaking first of the public person
under the name of David, He saith thus, "He shall cry unto Me, Thou
art My Father, My God, and the rock of My salvation. Also I will
make Him My firstborn, higher than the kings of the earth. My mercy
will I keep for Him for evermore, and My covenant shall stand fast
with Him. His seed also will I make to endure for ever, and His
throne as the days of heaven. If His children forsake My law, and
walk not in My judgments; If they break my statutes, and keep not My
commandments; Then will I visit their transgression with the rod,
and their iniquity with stripes. Nevertheless My lovingkindness will
I not utterly take from Him, nor suffer My faithfulness to fail. My
covenant will I not break, nor alter the thing that is gone out of
My lips. Once have I sworn by My holiness that I will not lie unto
David. His seed shall endure for ever, and His throne as the sun
before Me. It shall be established for ever as the moon, and as a
faithful witness in heaven" (Psa 89:26-37). "My covenant shall stand
fast with him"-mark that. As if God had said, I did not make this
covenant with man, but with My Son, and with Him I will perform it;
and seeing He hath given Me complete satisfaction, though His
children do, through infirmity, transgress, yet My covenant is not
therefore broken, seeing He with whom it was made standeth firm,
according to the desire of my heart; so that My justice that is
satisfied, and My Law, hath nothing to say, for there is no want of
perfection in the sacrifice of Christ.
If you love your souls, and would have them
live in the peace of God, to the which you are called in one body,
even all believers, then I beseech you seriously to ponder, and
labour to settle in your souls this one thing, that the new covenant
is not broken by our transgressions, and that because it was not
made with us. The reason why the very saints of God have so many ups
and downs in this their travel towards Heaven, it is because they
are so weak in the faith of this one thing; for they think that if
they fail of this or that particular performance, if their hearts be
dead and cold, and their lusts mighty and strong, therefore now God
is angry, and now He will shut them out of His favour, now the new
covenant is broken, and now Christ Jesus will stand their Friend no
longer; now also the devil hath power again, and now they must have
their part in the resurrection of damnation; when, alas! the
covenant is not for all this never the more broken, and so the grace
of God no more straitened than it was before. Therefore, I say, when
thou findest that thou art weak here, and failing there, backward to
this good, and thy heart forward to that evil; then be sure thou
keep a steadfast eye on the Mediator of this new covenant, and be
persuaded that it is not only made with Him, and His part also
fulfilled, but that He doth look upon His fulfilling of it, so as
not to lay thy sins to thy charge, though He may as a Father
chastise thee for the same-"If His children forsake My law, and walk
not in My judgments; if they break My statutes, and keep not My
commandments; then will I visit their transgression with the rod,
and their iniquity with stripes. Nevertheless," mark "nevertheless
My lovingkindness will I not utterly take from HIM, nor suffer My
faithfulness to fail. My covenant will I not break, nor alter the
thing that is gone out of My lips." And what was that? Why, that
"His seed shall endure for ever, and His throne as the sun before
Me" (Psa 89:30-34,36).
7. Another privilege that the saints have by
virtue of the new covenant is, that they have part of the possession
or hold of Heaven and Glory already, and that two manner of
ways-(1.) The Divine nature is conveyed from Heaven into them; and,
secondly, the human nature, i.e., the nature of man, is received up,
and entertained in, and hath got possession of Heaven. We have the
first-fruits of the Spirit, saith the man of God; we have the
earnest of the Spirit, which is instead of the whole, for it is the
earnest of the whole-"Which is the earnest of our inheritance until
the redemption of the purchased possession, unto the praise of His
glory" (Eph 1:13,14; Rom 8:8-11). (2.) The nature of man, our nature
is got into glory as the first-fruits of mankind, as a forerunner to
take possession till we all come thither (1 Cor 15:20). For the Man
born at Bethlehem is ascended, which is part of the lump of mankind,
into glory as a public Person, as the first-fruits, representing the
whole of the children of God; so that in some sense it may be said
that the saints have already taken possession of the kingdom of
Heaven by their Jesus, their public Person, He being in their room
entered to prepare a place for them (John 14:1-4). I beseech you
consider, when Jesus Christ came down from Glory, it was that He
might bring us to Glory; and that He might be sure not to fail, He
clothed Himself with our nature, as if one should take a piece out
of the whole lump instead of the whole, until the other comes, and
investeth it in that glory which He was in before He came down from
Heaven (Heb 2:14,15). And thus is that saying to be understood,
speaking of Christ and His saints, which saith, "And" He "hath
raised us up together, and made us sit together in heavenly places
in Christ Jesus" (Eph 2:6).
8. Again, not only thus, but all the power of
God, together with the rest of His glorious attributes, are on our
side, in that they dwell in our nature, which is the Man Jesus, and
doth engage for us poor, simple, empty, nothing creatures as to our
eternal happiness (1 Peter 1:5). "For in Him," that is, in the Man
Christ, who is our nature, our Head, our root, our flesh, our bone,
"dwelleth all the fullness of the Godhead bodily" (Col 2:9,10). Mark
how they are joined together, "In whom dwelleth the fullness of the
Godhead. And ye are complete in Him." God dwelleth completely in
Him, and you also are completely implanted in Him, which is the Head
of all principality and power; and all this by the consent of the
Father-"For it pleased the Father that in Him should all fullness
dwell" (Col 1:19). Now mark, the Godhead doth not dwell in Christ
Jesus for Himself only, but that it may be in a way of righteousness
conveyed to us, for our comfort and help in all our wants-"All power
is given unto Me in heaven and in earth," saith He (Matt 28:18). And
then followeth, "And lo, I am with you alway, even unto the end of
the world" (Verse 20). "He hath received gifts for men, yea for the
rebellious" (Psa 68:18). "Of His fullness have all we received, and
grace for grace" (John 1:16). And this the saints cannot be deprived
of, because the covenant made with Christ, in every tittle of it,
was so completely fulfilled as to righteousness, both active and
passive, that justice cannot object anything; holiness now can find
fault with nothing; nay, all the power of God cannot shake anything
that hath been done for us by the Mediator of the new covenant; so
that now there is no Covenant of Works to a believer; none of the
commands, accusations, condemnations, or the least tittle of the old
covenant to be charged on any of those that are the children of the
second covenant; no sin to be charged, because there is no law to be
pleaded, but all is made up by our middle man, Jesus Christ. O
blessed covenant! O blessed privilege! Be wise, therefore, O ye poor
drooping souls that are the sons of this second covenant, and "stand
fast in the liberty wherewith Christ hath made you free, and be not
entangled AGAIN," nor terrified in your consciences, "with the yoke
of bondage"; neither the commands, accusations, or condemnations of
the Law of the old covenant (Gal 5:1).
[TWO HELL-BRED OBJECTIONS ANSWERED.]
Object. If it be so, then one need not care
what they do; they may sin and sin again, seeing Christ hath made
satisfaction. [The first objection].
Answ. If I were to point out one that was
under the power of the devil, and going post-haste to Hell, for my
life I would look no farther for such a man than to him that would
make such a use as this of the grace of God. What, because Christ is
a Saviour, thou wilt be a sinner! because His grace abounds,
therefore thou wilt abound in sin! O wicked wretch! rake Hell all
over, and surely I think thy fellow will scarce be found! And let me
tell thee this before I leave thee-as God's covenant with Christ for
His children, which are of faith, stands sure, immutable,
unrevocable, and unchangeable, so also hath God taken such a course
with thee, that unless thou canst make God forswear Himself, it is
impossible that thou shouldst go to Heaven, dying in that
condition-"They tempted Me, proved Me," and turned the grace of God
into lasciviousness, "so I sware," mark that, "so I sware," and that
in My wrath, too, that they should never enter into My rest. Compare
Hebrews 3:9-11, with 1 Corinthians 10:5-10. No, saith God; if Christ
will not serve their turns, but they must have their sins too, take
them, Devil; if Heaven will not satisfy them, take them, Hell;
devour them, Hell; scald them, fry them, burn them, Hell! God hath
more places than one to put sinners into. If they do not like
Heaven, He will fit them with Hell; if they do not like Christ, they
shall be forced to have the devil. Therefore we must and will tell
of the truth of the nature of the Covenant of Grace of God to His
poor saints for their encouragement and for their comfort, who would
be glad to leap at Christ upon any terms; yet therewith, we can tell
how, through grace, to tell the hogs and sons of this world what a
hog-sty there is prepared for them, even such an one that God hath
prepared to put the devil and his angels into, is fitly prepared for
them (Matt 25:41).
Object. But if Christ hath given God a full
and complete satisfaction, then though I do go on in sin, I need not
fear, seeing God hath already been satisfied. [The second
objection]. It will be injustice in God to punish for those sins for
which He is already satisfied for by Christ.
Answ. Rebel, rebel, there are some in Christ
and some out of Him. [1]. They that are in Him have their sins
forgiven, and they themselves made new creatures, and have the
Spirit of the Son, which is a holy, living, self-denying Spirit. And
they that are thus in Jesus Christ are so far off from delighting in
sin, that sin is the greatest thing that troubleth them; and O how
willing would they be rid of the very thoughts of it (Psa 119:113).
It is the grief of their souls, when they are in a right frame of
spirit, that they can live no more to the honour and glory of God
than they do; and in all their prayers to God, the breathings of
their souls are as much sanctifying grace as pardoning grace, that
they might live a holy life. They would as willing live holy here as
they would be happy in the world to come; they would as willingly be
cleansed from the filth of sin as to have the guilt of it taken
away; they would as willingly glorify God here as they would be
glorified by Him hereafter (Phil 3:6-22). [2]. But there are some
that are out of Christ, being under the Law; and as for all those,
let them be civil or profane, they are such as God accounts wicked;
and I say, as for those, if all the angels in Heaven can drag them
before the judgment-seat of Christ, they shall be brought before it
to answer for all their ungodly deeds; and being condemned for them,
if all the fire in Hell will burn them, they shall be burned there,
if they die in that condition (Jude 15). And, therefore, if you love
your souls, do not give way to such a wicked spirit. "Let no man
deceive you with" such "vain words," as to think, because Christ
hath made satisfaction to God for sin, therefore you may live in
your sins. O no, God forbid that any should think so, "for because
of these things cometh the wrath of God upon the children of
disobedience" (Eph 5:6).
Thus have I, reader, given thee a brief
discourse touching the Covenant of Works and the Covenant of Grace,
also of the nature of the one, together with the nature of the
other. I have also in this discourse endeavoured to show you the
condition of them that are under the Law, how sad it is, both from
the nature of the covenant they are under, and also by the carriage
of God unto them by that covenant. And now, because I would bring
all into as little a compass as I can, I shall begin with the use
and application of the whole in as brief a way as I can, desiring
the Lord to bless it to thee.
[USE AND APPLICATION].
[A USE OF EXAMINATION ABOUT THE OLD COVENANT.]
First. And, first of all, let us here begin
to examine a little touching the covenant you stand before God in,
whether it be the Covenant of Works or the Covenant of Grace; [The
first use is a use of examination]. and for the right doing of this,
I shall lay down this proposition-namely, that all men naturally
come into the world under the first of these, which is called the
old covenant, or the Covenant of Works, which is the Law; "And were
all by nature the children of wrath, even as others"; which they
could not be, had they not been under the law; for there are none
that are under the other covenant that are still the children of
wrath, but the children of faith, the children of the promise, the
accepted children, the children not of the bond-woman, but of the
free (Gal 4:28-31).
[Quest.] Now here lieth the question. Which
of these two covenants art thou under, soul?
Answ. I hope I am under the Covenant of
Grace.
Quest. But what ground hast thou to think
that thou art under that blessed covenant, and not rather under the
Covenant of Works, that strict, that soul-damning covenant?
Answ. What ground? Why, I hope I am.
Quest. But what ground hast thou for this thy
hope? for a hope without a ground is like a castle built in the air,
that will never be able to do thee any good, but will prove like
unto that spoken of in Job 8, "Whose hope shall be cut off, and
whose trust shall be" like "a spider's web. He shall lean upon his
house, but it shall not stand; he shall hold it fast," as thou
wouldst thy hope, it is like, "but it shall not endure" (Job
8:13-15).
Answ. My hope is grounded upon the promises;
what else should it be grounded upon?
Reply. Indeed, to build my hope upon Christ
Jesus, upon God in Christ, through the promise, and to have this
hope rightly, by the shedding abroad of the love of God in the
heart, it is a right-grounded hope (Rom 5:1-7).
Quest. But what promises in the Scripture do
you find your hope built upon? and how do you know whether you do
build your hope upon the promises in the Gospel, the promises of the
new covenant, and not rather on the promises of the old covenant,
for there are promises in that as well as in the other?
Answ. I hope that if I do well I shall be
accepted; because God hath said I shall (Gen 4:7).
Reply. O soul, if thy hope be grounded there,
thy hope is not grounded upon the Gospel promises, or the new
covenant, but verily upon the old; for these words were spoken to
Cain, a son of the old covenant; and they themselves are the tenor
and scope of that; for that runs thus: "Do this, and thou shalt
live. The man that doth these things shall live by them. If thou do
well, thou shalt be accepted" (Lev 18:5; Eze 20:11; Rom 10:5; Gal
3:12; Gen 4:7).
Reply. Why, truly, if a man's doing well, and
living well, and his striving to serve God as well as he can, will
not help him to Christ, I do not know what will; I am sure sinning
against God will not.
Quest. Did you never read that Scripture
which saith, "Israel, which followed after the law of righteousness,
hath not attained to the law of righteousness"? (Rom 9:30-32).
Object. But doth not the Scripture say,
"Blessed are they that do His commandments, that they may have right
to the tree of life"? (Rev 22:14).
Answ. There is first, therefore, to be
inquired into, whether to keep His commandments be to strive to keep
the Law as it is a Covenant of Works, or whether it be meant of the
great commandments of the New Testament which are cited in 1 John
3:22,23-"And whatsoever we ask we receive of Him, because we keep
His commandments, and do those things that are pleasing in His
sight." But what do you mean, John? Do you mean the covenant of the
Law, or the covenant to the Gospel? Why, "this is His commandment,"
saith he, "That we should believe on the name of His Son Jesus
Christ, and love one another," as the fruits of this faith, "as He
gave us commandment." If it be of the old covenant, as a Covenant of
Works, then the Gospel is but a lost thing. If it were of works,
then no more of grace; therefore it is not the old covenant, as the
old covenant.
Quest. But what do you mean by these
words-the old covenant as the old covenant? Explain your meaning.
Answ. My meaning is, that the Law is not to
be looked upon for life, so as it was handed out from Mount Sinai,
if ever thou wouldst indeed be saved; though after thou hast faith
in Christ, thou mayest and must solace thyself in it, and take
pleasure therein, to express thy love to Him who hath already saved
thee by His own blood, without thy obedience to the law, either from
Sinai or elsewhere.
Quest. Do you think that I do mean that my
righteousness will save me without Christ? If so, you mistake me,
for I think not so; but this I say, I will labour to do what I can;
and what I cannot do, Christ will do for me.
Answ. Ah, poor soul, this is the wrong way
too; for this is to make Christ but a piece of a Saviour; thou wilt
do something, and Christ shall do the rest; thou wilt set thy own
things in the first place, and if thou wantest at last, then thou
wilt borrow of Christ; thou art such an one that dost Christ the
greatest injury of all. First, in that thou dost undervalue His
merits by preferring of thy own works before His; and, secondly, by
mingling of thy works thy dirty, ragged righteousness with His.
Quest. Why, would you have us do nothing?
Would you have us make Christ such a drudge as to do all, while we
sit idling still?
Answ. Poor soul, thou mistakest Jesus Christ
in saying thou makest Him a drudge in letting Him do all; I tell
thee, He counts it a great glory to do all for thee, and it is a
great dishonour unto Him for thee so much as to think otherwise. And
this the saints of God that have experienced the work of grace upon
their souls do count it also the same-"Saying, Thou art worthy to
take the book, and to open the seals thereof" (Rev 5:9). "Worthy is
the Lamb, that was slain, to receive power, and riches, and wisdom,
and strength, and honour, and glory, and blessing" (Verse 12). And
why so? read again in the 9th verse, "For Thou wast slain, and hast
redeemed us to God by Thy" own "blood" (See also Eph 1:6,7). "To the
praise of the glory of His grace-in whom we have redemption through
His blood."
Reply. All this we confess, that Jesus Christ
died for us; but he that thinks to be saved by Christ, and liveth in
his sins, shall never be saved.
Answ. I grant that. But this I say again, a
man must not make his good doings the lowest round of the ladder by
which he goeth to Heaven-that is, he that will and shall go to
Heaven, must, wholly and alone, without any of his own things,
venture his precious soul upon Jesus Christ and His merits.
Quest. What, and come to Christ as a sinner?
Answ. Yea, with all thy sins upon thee, even
as filthy as ever thou canst.
Quest. But is not this the way to make Christ
to loath us? You know when children fall down in the dirt, they do
usually before they go home make their clothes as clean as they can,
for fear their parents should chide them; and so I think should we.
Answ. This comparison is wrongly applied, if
you bring it to show us how we must do when we come to Christ. He
that can make himself clean hath no need of Christ; for the whole,
the clean, and righteous have no need of Christ, but those that are
foul and sick. Physicians, you know, if they love to be honoured,
they will not bid the patients first make themselves whole, and then
come to them; no, but bid them come with their sores all running on
them, as the woman with her bloody issue (Mark 5). And as Mary
Magdalene with her belly full of devils, and the lepers all scabbed;
and that is the right coming to Jesus Christ.
Reply. Well, I hope that Christ will save me,
for His promises and mercy are very large; and as long as He hath
promised to give us life, I fear my state the less.
Answ. It is very true, Christ's promises are
very large, blessed be the Lord for ever; and also so is His mercy;
but notwithstanding all that, there are many go in at the broad
gate; and therefore I say, your business is seriously to inquire
whether you are under the first or second covenant; for unless you
are under the second, you will never be regarded of the Lord,
forasmuch as you are a sinner (Heb 8:9). And the rather, because if
God should be so good to you as to give you a share in the second,
you shall have all your sins pardoned, and for certain have eternal
life, though you have been a great sinner. But do not expect that
thou shalt have any part or share in the large promises and mercy of
God, for the benefit and comfort of thy poor soul, whilst thou art
under the old covenant; because so long thou art out of Christ,
through whom God conveyeth His mercy, grace, and love to sinners.
"For all the promises of God in Him are yea, and in Him amen."
Indeed, His mercy, grace, and love are very great, but they are
treasured up in Him, "given forth in Him, through Him." "But God,
who is rich in mercy, for His great love wherewith He loved us-that
He might show the exceeding riches of His grace"-but which way?-"in
His kindness towards us through Jesus Christ."
But out of Christ thou shalt find God a just
God, a sin-avenging God, a God that will by no means spare the
guilty; and be sure that every one that is found out of Jesus Christ
will be found guilty in the judgment-day, upon whom the wrath of God
shall smoke to their eternal ruin. Now, therefore, consider of it,
and take the counsel of the Apostle, in 2 Corinthians 13:5, which
is, to examine thyself whether thou art "in the faith," and to prove
thy ownself whether thou hast received the Spirit of Christ into thy
soul, whether thou hast been converted, whether thou hast been born
again, and made a new creature, whether thou hast had thy sins
washed away in the blood of Christ, whether thou hast been brought
from under the old covenant into the new; and do not make a slight
examination, for thou hast a precious soul either to be saved or
damned.
And that thou mayest not be deceived,
consider that it is one thing to be convinced, and another to be
converted; one thing to be wounded, and another to be killed, and so
to be made alive again by the faith of Jesus Christ. When men are
killed, they are killed to all things they lived to before, both sin
and righteousness, as all their old faith and supposed grace that
they thought they had. Indeed, the old covenant will show thee that
thou art a sinner, and that a great one too; but the old covenant,
the Law, will not show thee, without the help of the Spirit, that
thou are without all grace by nature; no; but in the midst of thy
troubles thou wilt keep thyself from coming to Christ by persuading
thy soul that thou art come already, and hast some grace already. O,
therefore, be earnest in begging the Spirit, that thy soul may be
enlightened, and the wickedness of thy heart discovered, that thou
mayest see the miserable state that thou art in by reason of sin and
unbelief, which is the great condemning sin; and so in a sight and
sense of thy sad condition, if God should deal with thee in severity
according to thy deservings. Do thou [now] cry to God for faith in a
crucified Christ, that thou mayest have all thy sins washed away in
His blood, and such a right work of grace wrought in thy soul that
may stand in the judgment-day. Again,
Second. In the next place, you know I told
you that a man might go a great way in a profession, and have many
excellent gifts, [Second use]. so as to do many wondrous works, and
yet be but under the Law; from hence you may learn not to judge
yourselves to be the children of God, because you may have some
gifts of knowledge or understanding more than others: no, for thou
mayest be the knowingest man in all the country as to
head-knowledge, and yet be but under the law, and so consequently
under the curse, notwithstanding that, 1 Corinthians 13. Now, seeing
it is so, that men may have all this and yet perish, then what will
become of those that do no good at all, and have no understanding,
neither of their own sadness, nor of Christ's mercy? O, sad! Read
with understanding, Isaiah 27:11, "Therefore He that made them will
not have mercy on them, and He that formed them will show them no
favour" (See also 2 Thess 1:8, 9).
Now there is one thing which, for want of,
most people do miscarry in a very sad manner, and that is, because
they are not able to distinguish between the nature of the Law and
the Gospel. O, people, people, your being blinded here as to the
knowledge of this is one great cause of the ruining of many. As Paul
saith, "While Moses is read," or while the law is discovered, "the
veil is upon their heart" (2 Cor 3:15) that is, the veil of
ignorance is still upon their hearts, so that they cannot discern
either the nature of the law or the nature of the Gospel, they being
so dark and blind in their minds, as you may see, if you compare it
with Chronicles 4:3, 4. And truly I am confident, that were you but
well examined, I doubt many of you would be found so ignorant that
you would not be able to give a word of right answer concerning
either the Law or the Gospel. Nay, my friends, set the case, one
should ask you what time you spend, what pains you take, to the end
you may understand the nature and difference of these two covenants,
would you not say, if you should speak the truth, that you did not
so much as regard whether there were two or more? Would you not say,
I did not think of covenants, or study the nature of them? I thought
that if I had lived honestly, and did as well as I could, that God
would accept of me, and have mercy upon me, as He had on others. Ah,
friends, this is the cause of the ruin of thousands; for if they are
blinded to this, both the right use of the law, and also of the
Gospel, is hid from their eyes, and so for certain they will be in
danger of perishing most miserably, poor souls that they are, unless
God, of His mere mercy and love, doth rend the veil from off their
hearts, the veil of ignorance, for that is it which doth keep these
poor souls in this besotted and blindfolded condition, in which if
they die they may be lamented for, but not helped; they may be
pitied, but not preserved from the stoke of God's everlasting
vengeance.
[A LEGAL SPIRIT.]
In the next place, if you would indeed be
delivered from the first into the second covenant, I do admonish you
to the observing of these following particulars. First. Have a care
that you do not content yourselves, though you do good works-that
is, which in themselves are good. Secondly. In and with a legal
spirit, which are done these ways as followeth.
First. If you do anything commanded in
Scripture, and your doing of it do think that God is well pleased
therewith, because you, as you are religious men, do do the same.
Upon this mistake was Paul himself in danger of being destroyed; for
he thought, because he was zealous, and one of the strictest sects
for religion, therefore God would have been good unto him, and have
accepted his doings, as it is clear, for he counted them his gain
(Phil 3:4-8). Now this is done thus-When a man doth think that
because he thinks he is more sincere, more liberal, with more
difficulty, or to the weakening of his estate; I say, if a man,
because of this doth think that God accepteth his labour, it is done
from an old-covenant spirit.
Again; some men think that they shall be
heard because they have prayer in their families, because they can
pray long, and speak excellent expressions, or express themselves
excellently in prayer, that because they have great enlargements in
prayer, I say, that therefore to think that God doth delight in
their doings, and accept their works, this is from a legal spirit.
Again; some men think that because their
parents have been religious before them, and have been indeed the
people of God, they think if they also do as to the outward
observing of that which they learned from their forerunners, that
therefore God doth accept them; but this also is from a wrong
spirit; and yet how many are there in England at this day that think
the better of themselves merely upon that account; ay, and think the
people of God ought to think so too, not understanding that it is
ordinary for an Eli to have a Hophni and a Phinehas, both sons of
Belial; also a good Samuel to have a perverse offspring; likewise
David an Absalom. I say, their being ignorant of, or else negligent
in regarding this, they do think that because they do spring from
such and such, as the Jews in their generation did, that therefore
they have a privilege with God more than others, when there is no
such thing; but for certain, if the same faith be not in them which
was in their forerunners, to lay hold of the Christ of God in the
same spirit as they did, they must utterly perish, for all their
high conceits that they have of themselves (John 8:33-35; Matt
3:7-9).
Second. When people come into the presence of
God without having their eye upon the Divine Majesty, through the
flesh and blood of the Son of Mary, the Son of God, then also do
they come before God, and do whatsoever they do from a legal spirit,
an old-covenant spirit. As, for instance, you have some people, it
is true, they will go to prayer, in appearance very fervently, and
will plead very hard with God that He would grant them their
desires, pleading their want, and the abundance thereof; they will
also plead with God His great mercy, and also His free promises; but
yet they neglecting the aforesaid body or Person of Christ, the
righteous Lamb of God, to appear before Him in, I say, in thus doing
they do not appear before the Lord no otherwise than in an
old-covenant spirit; for they go to God as a merciful Creator, and
they themselves as His creatures; not as He is, their Father in the
Son, and they His children by regeneration through the Lord Jesus.
Ay, and though they may call God their Father, in the notion-not
knowing what they say, only having learned such things by
tradition-as the Pharisees did, yet Christ will have His time to say
to them, even to their faces, as He did once to the Jews, Your
father, for all this your profession, is the devil, to their own
grief and everlasting misery (John 8:44).
Third. The third thing that is to be
observed, if we would not be under the Law, or do things in a legal
spirit, is this-to have a care that we do none of the works of the
holy Law of God for life, or acceptance with Him; no, nor of the
Gospel neither. To do the works of the law to the end we may be
accepted of God, or that we may please Him, and to have our desires
of Him, is to do things from a legal or old-covenant spirit, and
that is expressly laid down where it is said, "To him that worketh
is the reward not reckoned of grace, but of debt"; that is, he
appears before God through the Law, and his obedience to it (Rom
4:4,5). And again, though they be in themselves Gospel-ordinances,
as baptism, breaking of bread, hearing, praying, meditating, or the
like; yet, I say, if they be not done in the right spirit, they are
thereby used as a hand by the devil to pull thee under the Covenant
of Works, as in former times he used circumcision, which was no part
of the Covenant of Works, the Ten Commands, but a seal of the
righteousness of faith; yet, I say, they being done in a legal
spirit, the soul was thereby brought under the Covenant of Works,
and so most miserably destroyed unawares to itself, and that because
there was not a right understanding of the nature and terms of the
said covenants. And so it is now; souls being ignorant of the nature
of the old covenant, do even by their subjecting to several Gospel
ordinances, run themselves under the old covenant, and fly off from
Christ, even when they think they are acoming closer to him. O,
miserable! If you would know when or how this is done, whether in
one particular or more, I shall show you as followeth-
1. That man doth bring himself under the
Covenant of Works, by Gospel ordinances, when he cannot be persuaded
that God will have mercy upon him except he do yield obedience to
such or such a particular thing commanded in the Word. This is the
very same spirit that was in the false brethren (spoken of Acts 15;
Galatians, the whole Epistle), whose judgment was, that unless such
and such things were done, "they could not be saved." As now-a-days
we have also some that say, Unless your infants be baptized they
cannot be saved;23 and others say, unless you be rightly baptized,
you have no ground to be assured that you are believers, or members
of churches; which is so far off from being so good as a legal
spirit, that it is the spirit of blasphemy, as is evident, because
they do reckon that the Spirit, righteousness, and faith of Jesus,
and the confession thereof, is not sufficient to declare men to be
members of the Lord Jesus; when, on the other side, though they be
rank hypocrites, yet if they do yield an outward subjection to this
or that, they are counted presently communicable members, which doth
clearly discover that there is not so much honour given to the
putting on the righteousness of the Son of God as there is given to
that which a man may do, and yet go to Hell within an hour after;
nay, in the very doing of it doth shut himself for ever from Jesus
Christ.
2. Men may do things from a legal or
old-covenant spirit when they content themselves with their doing of
such and such a thing, as prayers, reading, hearing, baptism,
breaking of bread, or the like; I say, when they can content
themselves with the thing done, and sit down at ease and content
because the thing is done. As, for instance, some men being
persuaded that such and such a thing is their duty, and that unless
they do do it, God will not be pleased with them, nor suffer them to
be heirs of His kingdom, they from this spirit do rush into and do
the thing, which being done, they are content, as being persuaded
that now they are without doubt in a happy condition, because they
have done such things, like unto the Pharisee, who, because he had
done this and the other thing, said therefore, in a bragging way,
"Lord, I thank thee that I am not as this publican"; for I have done
thus and thus; when, alas! the Lord give him never a good word for
his labour, but rather a reproof.
3. That man doth act from a legal spirit who
maketh the strictness of his walking the ground of his assurance for
eternal life. Some men, all the ground they have to believe that
they shall be saved, it is because they walk not so loose as their
neighbours, they are not so bad as others are, and therefore they
question not but that they shall do well. Now this is a false
ground, and a thing that is verily legal, and savours only of some
slight and shallow apprehensions of the old covenant. I call them
shallow apprehensions, because they are not right and sound, and are
such as will do the soul no good, but beguile it, in that the
knowledge of the nature of this covenant doth not appear to the
soul, only some commanding power it hath on the soul, which the soul
endeavouring to give up itself unto, it doth find some peace and
content, and especially if it find itself to be pretty willing to
yield itself to its commands. And is not this the very ground of thy
hoping that God will save thee from the wrath to come? If one should
ask thee what ground thou hast to think thou shalt be saved, wouldst
thou not say, Truly, because I have left my sins, and because I am
more inclinable to do good, [Do not think that I am against the
order of the Gospel]. and to learn, and get more knowledge; I
endeavour to walk in church order, as they call it, and therefore I
hope God hath done a good work for me, and I hope will save my soul.
Alas, alas! this is a very trick of the devil to make souls build
the ground of their salvation upon this their strictness, and
abstaining from the wickedness of their former lives, and because
they desire to be stricter and stricter. Now, if you would know such
a man or woman, you shall find them in this frame-namely, when they
think their hearts are good, then they think also that Christ will
have mercy upon them; but when their corruptions work, then they
doubt and scruple until again they have their hearts more ready to
do the things contained in the law and ordinances of the Gospel.
Again, such men do commonly cheer up their hearts, and encourage
themselves still to hope all shall be well, and that because they
are not so bad as the rest, but more inclinable than they, saying, I
am glad I am not as this publican, but better than he, more
righteous than he (Luke 18:11).
4. This is a legal and old-covenant spirit
that secretly persuades the soul that if ever it will be saved by
Christ, if must be fitted for Christ by its getting of a good heart
and good intentions to do this and that for Christ; I say, that the
soul when it comes to Christ may not be rejected or turned off; when
in deed and in truth this is the very way for the soul to turn
itself from Jesus Christ, instead of turning to Him; for such a soul
looks upon Christ rather to be a painted Saviour or a cypher than a
very and real Saviour. Friend, if thou canst fit thyself, what need
hast thou of Christ? If thou cant get qualifications to carry to
Christ that thou mightst be accepted, thou dost not look to be
accepted in the Beloved. Shall I tell thee? Thou art as if a man
should say, I will make myself clean, and then I will go to Christ
that He may wash me; or like a man possessed, that will first cast
the devils out of himself, and then come to Christ for cure from
Him. Thou, must, therefore, if thou wilt so lay hold of Christ as
not to be rejected by Him; I say, thou must come to Him as the
basest in the world, more fit to be damned, if thou hadst thy right,
than to have the least smile, hope, or comfort from Him. Come with
the fire of Hell in thy conscience, come with thy heart hard, dead,
cold, full of wickedness and madness against thy own salvation; come
as renouncing all thy tears, prayers, watchings, fastings; come as a
blood-red sinner; do not stay from Christ till thou hast a greater
sense of thy own misery, nor of the reality of God's mercy; do not
stay while thy heart is softer and thy spirit in a better frame, but
go against thy mind, and against the mind of the devil and sin,
throw thyself down at the foot of Christ, with a halter about thy
neck, and say, Lord Jesus, hear a sinner, a hard-hearted sinner, a
sinner that deserveth to be damned, to be cast into Hell; and
resolve never to return, or to give over crying unto Him, till thou
do find that He hath washed thy conscience from dead works with His
blood virtually, and clothed thee with His own righteousness, and
make thee complete in Himself; this is the way to come to Christ.
[THE USE OF THE NEW COVENANT.]
Now a few words to the second doctrine, and
so I shall draw towards a conclusion.
FIRST USE. The doctrine doth contain in it
very much comfort to thy [The use, for the second doctrine]. soul
who art a new-covenant man, or one of those who are under the new
covenant. There is, First, pardon of sin; and, Second, the
manifestation of the same; and, Third, as power to cause thee to
persevere through faith to the very end of thy life.
First, There is, first, pardon of sin, which
is not in the old covenant; for in that there is nothing but
commands; and if not obeyed, condemned. O, but there is pardon of
sin, even of all thy sins, against the first and second covenant,
under which thou art, and that freely upon the account of Jesus
Christ the righteousness, He having in thy name, nature, and in the
room of thy person, fulfilled all the whole law in Himself for thee,
and freely giveth it unto thee. O, though the law be a ministration
of death and condemnation, yet the Gospel, under which thou art, is
the ministration of life and salvation (2 Cor 3:6-9). Though they
that live and die under the first covenant, God regardeth them not
(Heb 8:9). Yet they that are under the second are as the apple of
His eye (Deu 32:10; Psa 17:8; Zech 2:8). Though they that are under
the first, the Law, are "called to blackness, and darkness, and
tempest, the sound of a trumpet," and a burning mountain, which
sight was so terrible, that Moses said, "I exceedingly fear and
quake" (Heb 12:18-22). "But ye are come unto Mount Sion, and unto
the city of the living God, the heavenly Jerusalem, and to an
innumerable company of angels, to the general assembly and church of
the firstborn," whose names "are written in Heaven, and to God the
Judge of all, and to the spirits of just men made perfect, and to
Jesus," to blessed Jesus, "the Mediator of the new covenant, and to
the blood of sprinkling, that speaketh better things than that of
Abel" (Heb 12:22-24). Even forgiveness of sins (Eph 1:7).
Second, The covenant that thou art under doth
allow of repentance in case thou chance to slip or fall by sudden
temptation; but the law allows of none (Rev 2:5; Gal 3:10). The
covenant that thou art under allows thee strength also; but the law
is only a sound of words, commanding words, but no power is given by
them to fulfill the things commanded (Heb 12:19). Thou that art
under this second, art made a son; but they that art under that
first, are slaves and vagabonds (Gen 4:12). Thou that art under
this, hast a Mediator, that is to stand between justice and thee;
but they under the other, their mediator is turned an accuser, and
speaketh most bitter things against their souls (1 Tim 2:5; John
5:45). Again; the way that thou hast into Paradise is a new and
living way-mark, a living way; but they that are under the old
covenant, their way into Paradise is a killing and destroying way
(Heb 10:20; Gen 3:24). Again; thou has the righteousness of God to
appear before God withal; but they under the old covenant have
nothing but the righteousness of the Law, which Paul counts dirt and
dung (Phil 3:7-9). Thou hast that which will make thee perfect, but
the other will not do so-"The law made nothing perfect, but the
bringing in of a better hope did," which is the Son of God, "by the
which we draw nigh unto God" (Heb 7:19).
Third, The new covenant promiseth thee a new
heart, as I said before; but the old covenant promiseth none; and a
new spirit, but the old covenant promiseth none (Eze 36:26). The new
covenant conveyeth faith, but the old one conveyeth none (Gal 3).
Through the new covenant the love of God is conveyed into the heart;
but through the old covenant there is conveyed none of it savingly
through Jesus Christ. Romans 5. The new covenant doth not only give
a promise of life, but also with that the assurance of life, but the
old one giveth none; the old covenant wrought wrath in us and to us,
but the new one worketh love (Rom 4:15; Gal 5:6). Thus much for the
first use.
SECOND USE. As all these, and many more
privileges, do come to thee through or by the new covenant, and that
thou mightst not doubt of the certainty of these glorious
privileges, God hath so ordered it that they do all come to thee by
way of purchase, being obtained for thee, ready to thy hand, by that
one Man Jesus, who is the Mediator, or the Person that hath
principally to do both with God and thy soul in the things
pertaining to this covenant; so that now thou mayst look on all the
glorious things that are spoken of in the new covenant, and say, All
these must be mine; I must have a share in them; Christ hath
purchased them for me, and given them to me. Now I need not to say,
O! but how shall I come by them? God is holy, I am a sinner; God is
just, and I have offended. No; but thou mayst say, Though I am vile,
and deserve nothing, yet Christ is holy, and He deserveth all
things; though I have so provoked God by breaking His law that He
could not in justice look upon me, yet Christ hath so gloriously
paid the debt that now God can say, Welcome, soul, I will give thee
grace, I will give thee glory, thou shalt lie in My bosom, and go no
more out; My Son hath pleased Me, He hath satisfied the loud cries
of the Law and justice, that called for speedy vengeance on thee; He
hath fulfilled the whole Law, He hath brought in everlasting
righteousness (Dan 9:24,25). He hath overcome the devil, He hath
washed away thy sins with His most precious blood, He hath destroyed
the power of death, and triumphs over all the enemies. This He did
in His own Person, as a common Jesus, for all persons in their
stead, even as for so many as shall come in to Him; for His victory
I give to them, His righteousness I give to them, His merits I
bestow on them, and look upon them holy, harmless, undefiled, and
for ever comely in my eye, through the victory of the Captain of
their salvation (1 Cor 15:55-57).
And that thou mayest, in deed and in truth,
not only hear and read this glorious doctrine, but be found one that
hath the life of it in thy heart, thou must be much in studying of
the two covenants, the nature of the one, and the nature of the
other, and the conditions of them that are under them both. Also,
thou must be well-grounded in the manner of the victory, and merits
of Christ, how they are made thine.
First, And here thou must, in the first
place, believe that the babe that was born of Mary, lay in a manger
at Bethlehem, in the time of Caesar Augustus; that He, that babe,
that child, was the very Christ.
Second, Thou must believe that in the days of
Tiberius Caesar, when Herod was tetrarch of Galilee, and Pontius
Pilate governor of Judea, that in those days He was crucified, or
hanged on a tree between two thieves, which by computation, or
according to the best account, is above sixteen hundred years since.
24
Third, Thou must also believe that when He
did hang upon that cross of wood on the Mount Calvary, that then He
did die there for the sins of those that did die before He was
crucified; also for their sins that were alive at the time of His
crucifying, and also that He did by that one death give satisfaction
to God for all those that should be born and believe in Him after
His death, even unto the world's end. I say, this thou must believe,
upon pain of eternal damnation, that by that one death, that when He
did die, He did put an end to the curse of the Law and sin [This is
the doctrine that I will live and die by, and be willing to be
damned if it saves me not. I am not ashamed of the Gospel of Christ,
for it is the power of God to salvation; therefore I preach Christ
crucified, to the Jews a stumbling block, and to the Greeks
foolishness (Rom 1:16; 1 Cor 1:23).] and at that time by His death
on the Cross, and by His resurrection out of Joseph's sepulchre, He
did bring in a sufficient righteousness to clothe thee withal
completely-"For by one offering He hath perfected for ever them that
are sanctified." Not that He should often offer Himself-"for then
must He often have suffered since the foundation of the world; but
now ONCE in the end of the world hath He appeared to put," or do,
"away sin by the sacrifice of Himself"-namely, when He hanged on the
Cross. For it is by the offering up of the body of this blessed
Jesus Christ ONCE for all. Indeed, other priests may offer
oftentimes sacrifices and offerings which can never take away sins;
but this Man, this Jesus, this anointed and appointed sacrifice,
when He had offered ONE sacrifice for sins, for ever sat down on the
right hand of God (Heb 10:14; 9:24,25).
[A word of advice]. But because thou in thy
pursuit after the faith of the Gospel wilt be sure to meet with
devils, heretics, particular corruptions, as unbelief, ignorance,
the spirit of works animated on by suggestions, false conclusions,
with damnable doctrines, I shall therefore briefly, besides what
hath been already said, speak a word or two before I leave thee of
further advice, especially concerning these two things. First, How
thou art to conceive of the Saviour. Second, How thou art to make
application of Him.
First. For the Saviour. 1. Thou must look
upon Him to be very God and very Man; not man only, nor God only,
but God and Man in one Person, both natures joined together, for the
putting of Him in a capacity to be a suitable Saviour; suitable, I
say, to answer both sides and parties, with whom He hath to do in
the office of His Mediatorship and being of a Saviour. 2. Thou must
not only do this, but thou must also consider and believe that even
what was done by Jesus Christ, it was not done by one nature without
the other; but thou must consider that both natures, both the
Godhead and the manhood, did gloriously concur and join together in
the undertaking of the salvation of our bodies and souls; not that
the Godhead undertook anything without the manhood, neither did the
manhood do anything without the virtue and union of the Godhead; and
thou must of necessity do this, otherwise thou canst not find any
sound ground and footing for thy soul to rest upon.
For if thou look upon any of these
asunder-that is to say, the Godhead without the manhood, or the
manhood without the Godhead-thou wilt conclude that what was done by
the Godhead was not done for man, being done without the manhood; or
else, that that which was done with the manhood could not answer
Divine justice, in not doing what it did by the virtue and in union
with the Godhead; for it was the Godhead that gave virtue and value
to the suffering of the manhood, and the manhood being joined
therewith, that giveth us an interest into the heavenly glory and
comforts of the Godhead.
What ground can a man have to believe that
Christ is his Saviour, if he do not believe that He suffered for sin
in his nature? And what ground also can a man have to think that God
the Father is satisfied, being infinite, if he believe not also that
He who gave the satisfaction was equal to Him who was offended?
Therefore, beloved, when you read of the
offering of the body of the Son of Man for our sins, then consider
that He did it in union with, and by the help of, the eternal
Godhead. "How much more shall the blood of Christ, who, through the
eternal Spirit, offered Himself without spot to God, purge your
consciences from dead works," etc.
And when thou readest of the glorious works
and splendour of the Godhead in Christ, then consider that all that
was done by the Godhead, it was done as it had union and communion
with the manhood. And then thou shalt see that the devil is overcome
by God-man; sin, death, Hell, the grave, and all overcome by Jesus,
God-man, and then thou shalt find them overcome indeed. They must
needs be overcome when God doth overcome them; and we have good
ground to hope the victory is ours, when in our nature they are
overcome.
Second. The second thing is, how to apply, or
to make application of this Christ to the soul. And for this there
are to be considered the following particulars-
1. That when Jesus Christ did thus appear,
being born of Mary, He was looked upon by the Father as if the sin
of the whole world was upon Him; nay, further, God did look upon Him
and account Him the sin of man-"He hath made Him to be sin for us,"
(2 Cor 5:21) that is, God made His Son Jesus Christ our sin, or
reckoned Him to be, not only a sinner, but the very bulk of sin of
the whole world, and condemned Him so severely as if He had been
nothing but sin. "For what the law could not do, in that it was weak
through the flesh, God sending His own Son in the likeness of sinful
flesh, and for sin, condemned sin in the flesh"-that is, for our
sins condemned His Son Jesus Christ; as if He had in deed and truth
been our very sin, although altogether "without sin" (Rom 8:3; 2 Cor
5:21). Therefore, as to the taking away of thy curse, thou must
reckon Him to be made sin for thee. And as to His being thy
justification, thou must reckon Him to be thy righteousness; for,
saith the Scripture, "He," that is, God, "hath made HIM to be SIN
for us, though He knew no sin, that we might be made the
RIGHTEOUSNESS of God in HIM."
2. Consider for whose sakes all this glorious
design of the Father and the Son was brought to pass; and that you
shall find to be for man, for sinful man (2 Cor 8:9).
3. The terms on which it is made ours; and
that you will find to be a free gift, merely arising from the
tender-heartedness of God-you are "justified freely by His grace,
through the redemption that is in Christ, whom God hath set forth to
be a Propitiation through faith in His blood," etc. (Rom 3:25).
4. How men are to reckon it theirs; and that
is, upon the same terms which God doth offer it, which is freely, as
they are worthless and undeserving creatures, as they are without
all good, and also unable to do any good. This, I say, is the right
way of applying the merits of Christ to thy soul, for they are
freely given to thee, a poor sinner, not for anything that is in
thee, or done by thee, but freely as thou art a sinner, and so
standest in absolute need thereof.
And, Christian, thou art not in this thing to
follow thy sense and feeling, but the very Word of God. The thing
that doth do the people of God the greatest injury, it is their too
little hearkening to what the Gospel saith, and their too much
giving credit to what the Law, sin, the devil, and conscience saith;
and upon this very ground to conclude that because there is a
certainty of guilt upon the soul, therefore there is also for
certain, by sin, damnation to be brought upon the soul. This is now
to set the Word of God aside, and to give credit to what is formed
by the contrary; but thou must give more credit to one syllable of
the written Word of the Gospel than thou must give to all the saints
and angels in Heaven and earth; much more than to the devil and thy
own guilty conscience.
Let me give you a parable:-There was a
certain man that had committed treason against his king; but
forasmuch as the king had compassion upon him, he sent him, by the
hand of a faithful messenger, a pardon under his own hand and seal;
but in the country where this poor man dwelt, there were also many
that sought to trouble him, by often putting of him in mind of his
treason, and the law that was to be executed on the offender. Now
which way should this man so honour his king, but as by believing
his handwriting, which was the pardon. Certainly he would honour him
more by so doing than to regard all the clamours of his enemies
continually against him.
Just thus it is here: thou having committed
treason against the King of Heaven, He through compassion, for
Christ's sake, hath sent thee a pardon; but the devil, the Law, and
thy conscience do continually seek to disturb thee by bringing thy
sins afresh into thy remembrance. But now, wouldst thou honour thy
King? Why then, he that believeth "the record that God hath given of
His Son," hath set to his seal that God is true. "And this is the
record, that God hath given to us eternal life, and this life is in
His Son" (1 John 5:11). And therefore, my brethren, seeing God our
Father hath sent us damnable traitors a pardon from Heaven, even all
the promises of the Gospel, and also hath sealed to the certainty of
it with the heart-blood of His dear Son, let us not be daunted,
though our enemies, with terrible voices, do bring our former life
never so often into our remembrance.
Object. But, saith the soul, how, if after I
have received a pardon, I should commit treason again? What should I
do then?
Answ. Set the case: thou hast committed
abundance of treason, He hath by Him abundance of pardons-"Let the
wicked forsake his way, and the unrighteous man his thoughts: and
let him return unto the LORD, and He will have mercy upon him; and
to our God, for He will abundantly pardon" (Isa 55:7).
Sometimes I myself have been in such a strait
that I have been almost driven to my wit's ends with the sight and
sense of the greatness of my sins; but calling to mind that God was
God in His mercy, pity, and love, as well as in His holiness,
justice, etc.; and again, considering the ability of the
satisfaction that was given to holiness and justice, to the end
there might be way made for sinners to lay hold of this mercy; I
say, I considering this, when tempted to doubt and despair, I have
answered in this manner-
"Lord, here is one of the greatest sinners
that ever the ground bare; a sinner against the Law, and a sinner
against the Gospel. I have sinned against light, and I have sinned
against mercy. And now, Lord, the guilt of them breaks my heart. The
devil also he would have me despair, telling of me that Thou art so
far from hearing my prayers in this my distress, that I cannot anger
Thee worse than to call upon Thee; for saith he, Thou art resolved
for ever to damn, and not to grant me the least of Thy favour; yet,
Lord, I would fain have forgiveness. And Thy Word, though much may
be inferred from it against me, yet it saith, If I come unto Thee,
Thou will in nowise cast me out. Lord, shall I honour Thee most by
believing Thou canst pardon my sins, or by believing Thou canst not?
Shall I honour Thee most by believing Thou wilt pardon my sins, or
by believing Thou wilt not? Shall I honour the blood of Thy Son also
by despairing that the virtue thereof is not sufficient, or by
believing that it is sufficient to purge me from all my blood-red
and crimson sins? Surely, Thou that couldst find so much mercy as to
pardon Manasseh, Mary Magdalene, the three thousand murderers,
persecuting Paul, murderous and adulterous David, and blaspheming
Peter-Thou that offeredst mercy to Simon Magus, a witch, and didst
receive the astrologers and conjurors in the 19th of Acts-Thou hast
mercy enough for one poor sinner. Lord, set the case: my sins were
bigger than all these, and I less deserved mercy than any of these,
yet Thou hast said in Thy Word that he that cometh to thee Thou wilt
in "nowise cast out." And God hath given comfort to my soul, even to
such a sinner as I am. And I tell you, there is no way so to honour
God, and to beat out the devil, as to stick to the truth of God's
Word and the merits of Christ's blood by believing. When Abraham
believed-even against hope and reason-he gave glory to God (Rom 4).
And this is our victory, even our faith (1 John 5:4). Believe, and
all things are possible to you. He that believeth shall be saved. He
that believeth on the Son hath everlasting life, and shall never
perish, neither shall any man pluck them out of Christ's Father's
hands.
And if thou dost indeed believe this, thou
wilt not only confess Him as the Quakers do-that is, that He was
born at Bethlehem of Mary, suffered on Mount Calvary under Pontius
Pilate, was dead and buried, rose again, and ascended, etc.; for all
this they confess, and in the midst of their confession they do
verily deny that His death on that Mount Calvary did give
satisfaction to God for the sins of the world, and that His
resurrection out of Joseph's sepulchre is the cause of our
justification in the sight of God, angels, and devils; but, I say,
if thou dost believe these things indeed, thou dost believe that
then, so long ago, even before thou wast born, He did bear thy sins
in His own body, which then was hanged on the tree, and never before
nor since; that thy old man was then crucified with Him, namely, in
the same body then crucified (See 1 Peter 2:24; and Rom 6:6). This
is nonsense to them that believe not; but if thou do indeed believe,
thou seest it so plain, and yet such a mystery, that it makes thee
wonder. But,
[THIRD USE]. In the third place, this
glorious doctrine of the new covenant, and the Mediator thereof,
will serve for the comforting, and the maintaining of the comfort,
of the children of the new covenant this way also-that is, that He
did not only die and rise again, but that He did ascend in His own
Person into Heaven to take possession thereof for me, to prepare a
place there for me, standeth there in the second part of His
suretyship to bring me safe in my coming thither, and to present me
in a glorious manner, without spot or wrinkle, or any such thing;
that He is there exercising of His priestly office for me, pleading
the perfection of His own righteousness for me, and the virtue of
His blood for me; that He is there ready to answer the accusations
of the Law, devil, and sin for me. Here thou mayst through faith
look the very devil in the face, and rejoice, saying, O Satan! I
have a precious Jesus, a soul-comforting Jesus, a sin-pardoning
Jesus. Here thou mayst hear the biggest thunder-crack that the Law
can give, and yet not be daunted. Here thou mayst say, O Law! thou
mayst roar against sin, but thou canst not reach me; thou mayst
curse and condemn, but not my soul; for I have righteous Jesus, a
holy Jesus, a soul-saving Jesus, and He hath delivered me from thy
threats, from thy curses, from thy condemnations; I am out of thy
reach, and out of thy bounds; I am brought into another covenant,
under better promises, promises of life and salvation, free promises
to comfort me without my merit, even through the blood of Jesus, the
satisfaction given to God for me by Him; therefore, though thou
layest my sins to my charge, and sayest thou wilt prove me guilty,
yet so long as Christ is above ground, and hath brought in
everlasting righteousness, and given that to me, I shall not fear
thy threats, thy charges, thy soul-scarring denunciations; my Christ
is all, hath done all, and will deliver me from all that thou, and
whatsoever else can bring an accusation against me. Thus also thou
may say when death assaulteth thee-O death, where is thy sting? Thou
mayst bite indeed, but thou canst not devour; I have comfort by and
through the one Man Jesus; Jesus Christ, He hath taken thee captive,
and taken away thy strength; He hath pierced thy heart, and let out
all thy soul-destroying poison; therefore, though I see thee, I am
not afraid of thee; though I feel thee, I am not daunted; for thou
hast lost thy sting in the side of the Lord Jesus; through Him I
overcome thee, and set foot upon thee. Also, O Satan! though I hear
thee grumble, and make a hellish noise, and though thou threaten me
very highly, yet my soul shall triumph over thee, so long as Christ
is alive and can be heard in Heaven; so long as He hath broken thy
head, and won the field of thee; so long as thou are in prison, and
canst not have thy desire. I, therefore, when I hear thy voice, do
pitch my thoughts on Christ my Saviour, and do hearken when He will
say, for He will speak comfort; He saith, He hath got the victory,
and doth give to me the crown, and causeth me to triumph through His
most glorious conquest.
Nay, my brethren, the saints under the
Levitical Law, who had not the new covenant sealed or confirmed any
further than by promise that it should be; I say, they, when they
thought of the glorious privileges that God had promised should
come, though at that time they were not come, but seen afar off, how
confidently were they persuaded of them, and embraced them, and were
so fully satisfied as touching the certainty of them, that they did
not stick at the parting with all for the enjoying of them. [Shall
not we then that see all things already done before us make it a
strong argument to increase our faith (Heb 11).] How many times doth
David in the Psalms admire, triumph, and persuade others to do so
also, through the faith that he had in the thing that was to be
done? Also Job, in what faith doth he say he should see his
Redeemer, though He had not then shed one drop of blood for him, yet
because He had promised so to do; and this was signified by the
blood of bulls and goats. Also Samuel, Isaiah, Jeremiah, Zechariah,
etc., how gloriously in confidence did they speak of Christ, and His
death, blood, conquest, and everlasting priesthood, even before He
did manifest Himself in the flesh which He took of the Virgin. [For
they were so many sure promises, with a remembrance in them, also
for the better satisfaction of them that believed them]. We that
have lived since Christ, have more ground to hope than they under
the old covenant had, though they had the word of the just God for
the ground of their faith. Mark, they had only the promise that He
should and would come; but we have the assured fulfilling of those
promises, because He is come; they were told that He should spill
His blood, but we do see He hath spilt His blood; they ventured all
upon His standing Surety for them, but we see He hath fulfilled, and
that faithfully too, the office of His Suretyship, in that,
according to the engagement, He hath redeemed us poor sinners; they
ventured on the new covenant, though not actually sealed, only
"because He judged Him faithful who had promised" (Heb 11:11). But
we have the covenant sealed, all things are completely done, even as
sure as the heart-blood of a crucified Jesus can make it.
There is a great difference between their
dispensation and ours for comfort, even as much as there is between
the making of a bond with a promise to seal it, and the sealing of
the same. It was made indeed in their time, but it was not sealed
until the time the blood was shed on the Mount Calvary; and that we
might indeed have our faith mount up with wings like an eagle, he
showeth us what encouragement and ground of faith we have to
conclude we shall be everlastingly delivered, saying, "For where a
testament" or covenant "is, there must also of necessity be the
death of the testator. For a testament is of force after men are
dead: otherwise it is of no strength at all while the testator
liveth. Whereupon neither the first testament was dedicated without
blood" (Heb 9:16-18). As Christ's blood was the confirmation of the
new covenant, yet it was not sealed in Abraham, Isaac, or Jacob's
days to confirm the covenant that God did tell them of, and yet they
believed; therefore we ought to give the more earnest heed to
believe the things that we have heard, and not in any wise to let
them be questioned; and the rather, because you see the testament is
not only now made, but confirmed; not only spoken of and promised,
but verily sealed by the death and blood of Jesus, who is the
Testator thereof.
My brethren, I would not leave you ignorant
of this one thing, that though the Jews had the promise of a
sacrifice, of an everlasting High Priest that should deliver them,
yet they had but the promise; for Christ was not sacrificed, and was
not then come a high priest of good things to come; only the type,
the shadow, the figure, the ceremonies they had, together with
Christ's engaging as Surety to bring all things to pass that were
promised should come, and upon that account received and saved.
It was with them and their dispensation as
this similitude gives you to understand:-Set the case that there be
two men who make a covenant that the one should give the other ten
thousand sheep on condition the other give him two thousand pound;
but forasmuch as the money is not to be paid down presently,
therefore if he that buyeth the sheep will have any of them before
the day of payment, the creditor requesteth a surety; and upon the
engagement of the surety there is part of the sheep given to the
debtor even before the day of payment, but the other at and after.
So it is here; Christ covenanted with His Father for His sheep-"I
lay down My life for My sheep," saith He-but the money was not to be
paid down so soon as the bargain was made, as I have already said,
yet some of the sheep were saved even before the money was paid, and
that because of the Suretyship of Christ; as it is written, "Being
justified," or saved, "freely by His grace through the redemption,"
or purchase, "that is in Christ Jesus. Whom God hath set forth to be
a propitiation through faith in His blood, to declare His
righteousness for the remission of sins that are past," or the
sinners who died in the faith before Christ was crucified, through
God's forbearing till the payment was paid; to declare, I say, at
this time His righteousness; "that He might be just, and the
justifier of him which believeth in Jesus" (Rom 3:24-26).
The end of my speaking of this is, to show
you that it is not wisdom now to doubt whether God will save you or
no, but to believe, because all things are finished as to our
justification: the covenant not only made, but also sealed; the debt
paid, the prison doors flung off of the hooks, with a proclamation
from Heaven of deliverance to the prisoners of hope, saying, "Turn
you to the stronghold, ye prisoners of hope, even today do I
declare," saith God, "that I will render double unto thee" (Zech
9:12). And, saith Christ, when He was come, "The Spirit of the Lord
is upon me, because He hath anointed Me to preach the Gospel," that
is, good tidings "to the poor," that their sins should be pardoned,
that their souls shall be saved. "He hath sent Me to heal the
broken-hearted, to preach deliverance to the captives, and
recovering of sight to the blind, to set at liberty them that are
bruised," and to comfort them that mourn, "to preach the acceptable
year of the Lord" (Luke 4:18,19).
Therefore here, soul, thou mayst come to
Jesus Christ for anything thou wantest, as to a common
treasure-house, being the principal Man for the distributing of the
things made mention of in the new covenant, He having them all in
His own custody by right of purchase; for He hath bought them all,
paid for them all. Dost thou want faith? then come for it to the Man
Christ Jesus (Heb 12:2). Dost thou want the Spirit? then ask it of
Jesus. Dost thou want wisdom? Dost thou want grace of any sort? Dost
thou want a new heart? Dost thou want strength against thy lusts,
against the devil's temptations? Dost thou want strength to carry
thee through afflictions of body, and afflictions of spirit, through
persecutions? Wouldst thou willingly hold out, stand to the last,
and be more than a conqueror? then be sure thou meditate enough on
the merits of the blood of Jesus, how He hath undertaken for thee,
that He hath done the work of thy salvation in thy room, that He is
filled of God on purpose to fill thee, and is willing to communicate
whatsoever is in Him or about Him to thee. Consider this, I say, and
triumph in it.
Again; this may inform us of the safe state
of the saints as touching their perseverance, that they shall stand
though Hell rages, though the devil roareth, and all the world
endeavoureth the ruin of the saints of God, though some, through
ignorance of the virtue of the offering of the body of Jesus Christ,
do say a man may be a child of God today, and a child of the devil
tomorrow, which is gross ignorance; for what? Is the blood of
Christ, the death of Christ, the resurrection of Christ, of no more
virtue than to bring in for us an uncertain salvation? or must the
effectualness of Christ's merits, as touching our perseverance, be
helped on by the doings of man? Surely they that are predestinated
are also justified; and they that are justified, they shall be
glorified (Rom 8:30). Saints, do not doubt of the salvation of your
souls, unless you do intend to undervalue Christ's blood; and do not
think but that He that hath begun the good work of His grace in you
will perfect it to the second coming of our Lord Jesus (Phil 1:6).
Should not we, as well as Paul, say, I am persuaded that nothing
shall separate us from the love of God, which is in Christ Jesus
(Rom 8). O let the saints know, that unless the devil can pluck
Christ out of Heaven, he cannot pull a true believer out of Christ.
When I say a true believer, I do mean such an one as hath the faith
of the operation of God in his soul.
Lastly, Is there such mercy as this? such
privileges as these? Is there so much ground of comfort, and so much
cause to be glad? Is there so much store in Christ, and such a ready
heart in Him to give it to me? Hath His bleeding wounds so much in
them, as that the fruits thereof should be the salvation of my soul,
of my sinful soul, as to save me, sinful me, rebellious me,
desperate me? What then? Shall not I now be holy? Shall not I now
study, strive, and lay out myself for Him that hath laid out Himself
soul and body for me? Shall I now love ever a lust or sin? Shall I
now be ashamed of the cause, ways, people, or saints of Jesus
Christ? Shall I now yield my members as instruments of
righteousness, seeing my end is everlasting life? (Rom 6). Shall
Christ think nothing too dear for me? and shall I count anything too
dear for Him? Shall I grieve Him with my foolish carriage? Shall I
slight His counsel by following of my own will? Thus, therefore, the
doctrine of the new covenant doth call for holiness, engage to
holiness, and maketh the children of that covenant to take pleasure
therein. Let no man, therefore, conclude on this, that the doctrine
of the Gospel is a licentious doctrine; but if they do, it is
because they are fools, and such as have not tasted of the virtue of
the blood of Jesus Christ; neither did they ever feel the nature and
sway that the love of Christ hath in the hearts of His. And thus
also you may see that the doctrine of the Gospel is of great
advantage to the people of God that are already come in, or to them
that shall at the consideration hereof be willing to come in, to
partake of the glorious benefits of this glorious covenant. But,
saith the poor soul,
Object. Alas! I doubt this is too good for
me.
Inquirer. Why so, I pray you?
Object. Alas! because I am a sinner.
Reply. Why, all this is bestowed upon none
but sinners, as it is written, While we were ungodly, Christ died
for us (Rom 5:6,8). "He came into the world to save sinners" (1 Tim
1:15).
Object. O, but I am one of the chief of
sinners.
Reply. Why, this is for the chief of
sinners-"Christ Jesus came into the world to save sinners, of whom I
am chief," saith Paul (1 Tim 1:15).
Object. O, but my sins are so big, that I
cannot conceive how I should have mercy.
Reply. Why, soul? Didst thou ever kill
anybody? Didst thou ever burn any of thy children in the fire to
idols? Hast thou been a witch? Didst thou ever use enchantments and
conjuration? [You that are resolved to go on in your sins, meddle
not with this]. Didst thou ever curse, and swear, and deny Christ?
And yet if thou hast, there is yet hopes of pardon; yea, such
sinners as these have been pardoned, as appears by these and the
like Scriptures, 2 Chronicles 33:1-10, compared with verses 12, 13.
Again, Acts 19:19, 20; 8:22, compared with verse 9; Matthew 26:74,
75.
Object. But though I have not sinned in such
kind of sins, yet it may be I have sinned as bad.
Answ. That cannot likely be; yet though thou
hast, still there is ground of mercy for thee, forasmuch as thou art
under the promise (John 6:37).
[THE UNPARDONABLE SIN.]
Object. Alas! man, I am afraid that I have
sinned the unpardonable sin, and therefore there is no hope for me.
Answ. Dost thou know what the unpardonable
sin, the sin against the Holy Ghost, is? and when it is committed?
Reply. It is a sin against light.
Answ. That is true; yet every sin against
light is not the sin against the Holy Ghost.
Reply. Say you so?
Answ. Yea, and I prove it thus-If every sin
against light had been the sin that is unpardonable, then had David
and Peter and others sinned that sin; but though they did sin
against light, yet they did not sin that sin; therefore every sin
against light is not the sin against the Holy Ghost, the
unpardonable sin.
Object. But the Scripture saith, "If we sin
willfully after that we have received the knowledge of the Truth,
there remaineth no more sacrifice for sins; but a certain fearful
looking for of judgment and fiery indignation, which shall devour
the adversaries."
Answ. Do you know what that willful sin is?
Reply. Why, what is it? Is it not for a man
to sin willingly after enlightening?
Answ. 1. Yes; yet doubtless every willing sin
is not that; for then David had sinned it when he lay with
Bathsheba; and Jonah, when he fled from the presence of the Lord;
and Solomon also, when he had so many concubines. 2. But that sin is
a sin that is of another nature, which is this-For a man after he
hath made some profession of salvation to come alone by the blood of
Jesus, together with some light and power of the same upon his
spirit; I say, for him after this knowingly, willfully, and
despitefully to trample upon the blood of Christ shed on the Cross,
and to count it an unholy thing, or no better than the blood of
another man, and rather to venture his soul any other way than to be
saved by this precious blood. And this must be done, I say, after
some light (Heb 6:4,5) despitefully (Heb 10:29) knowingly (2 Peter
2:21) and willfully (Heb 10:26 compared with verse 29) and that not
in a hurry and sudden fit, as Peter's was, but with some time
beforehand to pause upon it first, with Judas; and also with a
continued resolution never to turn or be converted again; "for it is
impossible to renew such again to repentance," they are so resolved
and so desperate (Heb 6).
Quest. And how sayest thou now? Didst thou
ever, after thou hadst received some blessed light from Christ,
willfully, despitefully, and knowingly stamp or trample the blood of
the Man Christ Jesus under thy feet? and art thou for ever resolved
so to do?
Answ. O no; I would not do that willfully,
despitefully, and knowingly, not for all the world.
Inquiry. But yet I must tell you, now you put
me in mind of it, surely sometimes I have most horrible blasphemous
thoughts in me against God, Christ, and the Spirit. May not these be
that sin I trow?
Answ. Dost thou delight in them? Are they
such things as thou takest pleasure in?
Reply. O no; neither would I do it for a
thousand worlds. O, methinks they make me sometimes tremble to think
of them. But how and if I should delight in them before I am aware?
Answ. Beg of God for strength against them,
and if at any time thou findest thy wicked heart to give way in the
least thereto, for that is likely enough, and though thou find it
may on a sudden give way to that Hell-bred wickedness that is in it,
yet do not despair, forasmuch as Christ hath said, "All manner of
sins and blasphemies shall be forgiven to the sons of men. And
whosoever speaketh a word against the Son of man," that is Christ,
as he may do with Peter, through temptation, yet upon repentance,
"it shall be forgiven him" (Matt 12:31, 32).
Object. But I thought it might have been
committed all on a sudden, either by some blasphemous thought, or
else by committing some other horrible sin.
Answ. For certain, this sin and the
commission of it doth lie in a knowing, willful, malicious, or
despiteful, together with a final trampling the blood of sweet Jesus
under foot (Heb 10).
Object. But it seems to be rather a resisting
of the Spirit, and the motions thereof, than this which you say;
for, first, its proper title is the sin against the Holy Ghost; and
again, "They have done despite unto the Spirit of grace"; so that it
rather seems to be, I say, that a resisting of the Spirit, and the
movings thereof, is that sin.
Answ. First. For certain, the sin is
committed by them that do as before I have said-that is, by a final,
knowing, willful, malicious trampling under foot the blood of
Christ, which was shed on Mount Calvary when Jesus was there
crucified. And though it be called the sin against the Spirit, yet
as I said before, every sin against the Spirit is not that; for if
it were, then every sin against the light and convictions of the
Spirit would be unpardonable; but that is an evident untruth, for
these reasons-First, Because there be those who have sinned against
the movings of the Spirit, and that knowingly too, and yet did not
commit that sin; as Jonah, who when God had expressly by His Spirit
bid him go to Nineveh, he runs thereupon quite another way.
Secondly, Because the very people that have sinned against the
movings of the Spirit are yet, if they do return, received to mercy.
Witness also Jonah, who though he had sinned against the movings of
the Spirit of the Lord in doing contrary thereunto, "yet when he
called," as he saith, "to the Lord," out of the belly of Hell, "the
LORD heard him, and gave him deliverance, and set him again about
his work." Read the whole story of that Prophet. But,
Answ. Second. I shall show you that it must
needs be willfully, knowingly, and a malicious rejecting of the Man
Christ Jesus as the Saviour-that is, counting His blood, His
righteousness, His intercession in His own Person, for he that
rejects one rejects all, to be of no value as to salvation; I say,
this I shall show you is the unpardonable sin, and then afterwards
in brief show you why it is called the sin against the Holy Ghost.
[Must be a willfully and maliciously
rejecting the Saviour.]
1. That man that doth reject, as aforesaid,
the blood, death, righteousness, resurrection, ascension, and
intercession of the Man Christ, doth reject that sacrifice, that
blood, that righteousness, that victory, that rest, that God alone
hath appointed for salvation-"Behold the Lamb," or sacrifice, "of
God" (John 1:29). "We have redemption through His blood" (Eph 1:7).
That I may "be found in Him"-to wit, in Christ's righteousness, with
Christ's own personal obedience to His Father's will (Phil 3:7-10).
By His resurrection comes justification (Rom 4:25). His intercession
now in His own Person in the Heavens, now absent from His saints, is
the cause of the saints' perseverance (Rom 8:33-39).
2. They that reject this sacrifice, and the
merits of this Christ, which He by Himself hath brought in for
sinners, have rejected Him through whom alone all the promises of
the New Testament, together with all the mercy discovered thereby,
doth come unto poor creatures-"For all the promises of God in Him
are yea, and in Him amen, unto the glory of God" (2 Cor 1:20). And
all spiritual blessings are made over to us through Him; that is,
through and in this Man, which is Christ, we have all our spiritual,
heavenly, and eternal mercies (Eph 1:3,4).
3. He that doth knowingly, willfully, and
despitefully reject this Man for salvation doth sin the unpardonable
sin, because there is never another sacrifice to be offered. "There
is no more offering for sin.-There remaineth no more sacrifice for
sin," (Heb 10:18-26); namely, than the offering of the body of Jesus
Christ a sacrifice once for all (Heb 10:10,14, compared with 18,
26). No; but they that shall, after light and clear conviction,
reject the first offering of His body for salvation, do crucify Him
the second time, which irrecoverably merits their own damnation-"For
it is impossible for those who were once enlightened, and have
tasted of the heavenly gift, and were made partakers of the Holy
Ghost, and have tasted the good Word of God, and the powers of the
world to come, if they shall fall away, to renew them again unto
repentance; seeing they crucify to themselves the Son of God afresh,
and put Him to an open shame" (Heb 6:4-6). "If they shall fall away,
to renew them again unto repentance." And why so? Seeing, saith the
Apostle, they do crucify to themselves the Son of God afresh, and do
put Him to an open shame. O, then, how miserably hath the devil
deceived some, in that he hath got them to reject the merits of the
first offering of the body of Christ, which was for salvation, and
got them to trust in a fresh crucifying of Christ, which unavoidably
brings their speedy damnation.
4. They that do reject this Man, as
aforesaid, do sin the unpardonable sin, because in rejecting Him
they do make way for the justice of God to break out upon them, and
to handle them as it shall find them; which will be, in the first
place, sinners against the first covenant; and also despising of,
even the life, and glory, and consolations, pardon, grace, and love,
that is discovered in the second covenant, forasmuch as they reject
the Mediator and priest of the same, which is the Man Jesus. And the
man that doth so, I would fain see how his sins should be pardoned,
and his soul saved, seeing the means, which is the Son of Man, the
Son of Mary, and His merits, are rejected; "for," saith He, "if you
believe not that I am He, you shall," mark, "you shall," do what you
can; "you shall," appear where you can; "you shall," follow Moses'
law, or any holiness whatsoever, "ye shall die in your sins" (John
8:24). So that, I say, the sin that is called the unpardonable sin
is a knowing, willful, and despiteful rejecting of the sacrificing
of the Son of Man the first time for sin.
[Why it is called the sin against the Holy
Ghost.]
And now to show you why it is called the sin
against the Holy Ghost, as in these Scriptures, (Matt 12; Heb 10;
Mark 3).
1. Because they sin against the manifest
light of the Spirit, as I said before; it is a sin against the light
of the Spirit-that is, they have been formerly enlightened into the
nature of the Gospel and the merits of the Man Christ, and His
blood, righteousness, intercession, etc.; and also professed and
confessed the same, with some life and comfort in and through the
profession of Him; yet now against all that light, maliciously, and
with despite to all their former profession, turn their backs and
trample upon the same.
2. It is called the sin against the Holy
Ghost because such a person doth, as I may say, lay violent hands on
it; one that sets himself in opposition to, and is resolved to
resist all the motions that do come in from the Spirit to persuade
the contrary. For I do verily believe that men, in this very
rejecting of the Son of God, after some knowledge of Him, especially
at their first resisting and refusing of Him, they have certain
motions of the Spirit of God to dissuade them from so great a
soul-damning act. But they, being filled with an overpowering
measure of the spirit of the devil, do despite unto these
convictions and motions by studying and contriving how they may
answer them, and get from under the convincing nature of them, and
therefore it is called a doing despite unto the Spirit of Grace (Heb
10:29). And so,
3. In that they do reject the beseeching of
the Spirit, and all its gentle entreatings of the soul to tarry
still in the same doctrine.
4. In that they do reject the very testimony
of the Prophets and Apostles with Christ Himself; I say, their
testimony, through the Spirit, of the power, virtue, sufficiency,
and prevalency of the blood, sacrifice, death, resurrection,
ascension, and intercession of the Man Christ Jesus, of which the
Scriptures are full both in the Old and New Testament, as the
Apostle saith, for all the Prophets from Samuel, with them that
follow after, have showed of these days-that is, in which Christ
should be a sacrifice for sin (Acts 3:24, compared with verses 6,
13-15, 18, 26). Again, saith, he, "He therefore that despiseth not
man, but God; who hath also given unto us His Holy Spirit" (1
Thessalonians 4:8); that is, he rejecteth or despiseth the very
testimony of the Spirit.
5. It is called the sin against the Holy
Ghost, because he that doth reject and disown the doctrine of
salvation by the Man Christ Jesus, through believing in Him, doth
despise, resist, and reject the wisdom of the Spirit; for the wisdom
of God's Spirit did never more appear than its finding out a way for
sinners to be reconciled to God by the death of this Man; and
therefore Christ, as He is a sacrifice, is called the wisdom of God.
And again, when it doth reveal the Lord Jesus it is called the
"Spirit of wisdom and revelation in the knowledge of Him" (Eph
1:17).
Object. But, some may say, the slighting or
rejecting of the Son of Man, Jesus of Nazareth, the Son of Mary,
cannot be the sin that is unpardonable, as is clear from that
Scripture in Matthew 12:32, where He Himself saith, "Whosoever
speaketh a word against the Son of Man, it shall be forgiven him;
but whosoever speaketh against the Holy Ghost, it shall not be
forgiven him, neither in this world, neither in the world to come."
Now by this it is clear that the sin that is unpardonable is one
thing, and the sin against the Son of Man another; that sin that is
against the Son of Man is pardonable; but if that was the sin
against the Holy Ghost, it would not be pardonable; therefore the
sin against the Son of Man is not the sin against the Holy Ghost,
the unpardonable sin.
Answ. 1. I do know full well that there are
several persons that have been pardoned, yet have sinned against the
Son of Man, and that have for a time rejected Him, as Paul (1 Tim
1:13, 14) also the Jews (Acts 2:36,37). But there was an ignorant
rejecting of Him, without the enlightening, and taste, and feeling
of the power of the things of God, made mention in Hebrews 6:3-6. 2.
There is and hath been a higher manner of sinning against the Son of
Man, which also hath been, and is still, pardonable; as in the case
of Peter, who in a violent temptation, in a mighty hurry, upon a
sudden denied Him, and that after the revelation of the Spirit of
God from Heaven to him, that He, Jesus, was the Son of God (Matt
16:16-18). This also is pardonable, if there be a coming up again to
repentance. O, rich grace! O, wonderful grace! that God should be so
full of love to His poor creatures, that though they do sin against
the Son of God, either through ignorance, or some sudden violent
charge breaking loose from Hell upon them, but yet take if for
certain that if a man do slight and reject the Son of God and the
Spirit in that manner as I have before hinted-that is, for a man
after some great measure of the enlightening by the Spirit of God,
and some profession of Jesus Christ to be the Saviour, and His blood
that was shed on the mount without the gates of Jerusalem to be the
Atonement; I say, he that shall after this knowingly, willfully, and
out of malice and despite reject, speak against, and trample that
doctrine under foot, resolving for ever so to do, and if he there
continue, I will pawn my soul upon it, he hath sinned the
unpardonable sin, and shall never be forgiven, neither in this
world, nor in the world to come; or else these Scriptures that
testify the truth of this must be scrabbled out, and must be looked
upon for mere fables, which are these following-"For if after they
have escaped the pollutions of the world, through the knowledge of
our Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ," which is the Son of Man (Matt
16:13) "and are again entangled therein, and overcome," which must
be by denying this Lord that brought them (2 Peter 2:1) "the latter
end is worse with them than the beginning," (2 Peter 2:20). For it
is impossible for those who were once enlightened, and have tasted
of the heavenly gift-and have tasted the good Word of God, and the
powers of the world to come; if they shall fall away," not only
fall, but fall away, that is, finally (Heb 10:29) "it is impossible
to renew them again unto repentance"; and the reason is rendered,
"seeing they crucify to themselves the Son of God," which is the Son
of Man, "afresh, and put Him to an open shame" (Heb 6:4-6). Now if
you would further know what it is to crucify the Son of God afresh,
it is this-for to undervalue and trample under foot the merits and
virtue of His blood for remission of sins, as is clearly manifested
in Hebrews 10:26-28, where it is said, "For if we sin willfully
after that we have received the knowledge of the Truth, there
remaineth no more sacrifice for sins, but a certain fearful looking
for of judgment and fiery indignation, which shall devour the
adversaries. He that despised Moses' law died without mercy,-of how
much sorer punishment, suppose ye, shall he be thought worthy, who
hath trodden under foot the Son of God," there is the second
crucifying of Christ, which the Quakers think to be saved by, "and
hath counted the blood of the covenant, wherewith he was sanctified,
an unholy thing,"-and then followeth-"and hath done despite unto the
Spirit of Grace?" (verse 29). All that Paul had to keep him from
this sin was, his ignorance in persecuting the Man and merits of
Jesus Christ (Acts 9). But I obtained mercy, saith he, because I did
it ignorantly (1 Tim 1:13). And Peter, though he did deny Him
knowingly, yet he did it unwillingly, and in a sudden and fearful
temptation, and so by the intercession of Jesus escaped that danger.
So, I say, they that commit this sin, they do it after light,
knowingly, willfully, and despitefully, and in the open view of the
whole world reject the Son of Man for being their Lord and Saviour,
and in that it is called the sin against the Holy Ghost. It is a
name most fit for this sin to be called the sin against the Holy
Ghost, for these reasons but now laid down; for this sin is
immediately committed against the motions, and convictions, and
light of the Holy Spirit of God that makes it its business to hand
forth and manifest the truth and reality of the merits and virtues
of the Lord Jesus, the Son of Man. And therefore beware, Ranters and
Quakers, for I am sure you are the nearest that sin by profession,
which is, indeed, the right committing of it, of any persons that I
do know at this day under the whole heavens, forasmuch as you will
not venture the salvation of your souls on the blood shed on Mount
Calvary, out of the side of that Man that was offered up in
sacrifice for all that did believe (Luke 23:33). In that His
offering up of His body at that time, either before He offered it,
or that have, do, or shall believe on it for the time since,
together with that time that He offered it, though formerly you did
profess that salvation was wrought out that way, by that sacrifice
then offered, and also seemed to have some comfort thereby; yea,
insomuch that some of you declared the same in the hearing of many,
professing yourselves to be believers of the same. O, therefore, it
is sad for you that were once enlightened, and have tasted these
good things, and yet, notwithstanding all your profession, you are
now turned from the simplicity that is in Christ to another
doctrine, which will be your destruction, if you continue in it; for
without blood there is no remission (Heb 9:22).
Many other reasons might be given, but that I
would not be too tedious; yet I would put in this caution, that if
there be any souls that be but now willing to venture their
salvation upon the merits of a naked Jesus, I do verily for the
present believe they have not sinned that sin, because there is
still a promise holds forth itself to such a soul where Christ
saith, "Him that cometh to me, I will in nowise," for nothing that
he hath done, "cast him out" (John 6:37). That promise is worth to
be written in letters of gold.
[OBJECTIONS ANSWERED FOR THEIR COMFORT WHO WOULD HAVE THEIR PART IN THE NEW COVENANT.]
Object. But, alas, though I should never sin
that sin, yet I have other sins enough to damn me.
Answ. What though thou hadst the sins of a
thousand sinners, yet if thou come to Christ, He will save thee
(John 6:37; See also Hebrews 7:25).
Object. Alas, but how shall I come? I doubt I
do not come as I should do? My heart is naught and dead; and, alas!
then how should I come?
Answ. Why, bethink thyself of all the sins
that ever thou didst commit, and lay the weight of them all upon thy
heart, till thou art down loaden with the same, and come to Him in
such a case as this, and He will give thee rest for thy soul (Matt
11:28-30). And again; if thou wouldst know how thou shouldst come,
come as much undervaluing thyself as ever thou canst, saying, Lord,
here is a sinner, the basest in all the country; if I had my
deserts, I had been damned in Hell-fire long ago; Lord, I am not
worthy to have the least corner in the Kingdom of Heaven; and yet, O
that Thou wouldst have mercy! Come like Benhadad's servants to the
king of Israel, with a rope about thy neck (1 Kings 20:31,32) and
fling thyself at Christ's feet, and lie there a while, striving with
Him by thy prayers, and I will warrant thee speed (Matt 11:28-30;
John 6:37).
Object. O, but I am not sanctified.
Answ. He will sanctify thee, and be made thy
sanctification also (1 Cor 1:30; 6:10,11).
Object. O, but I cannot pray.
Answ. To pray is not for thee to down on thy
knees, and say over a many Scripture words only; for that thou
mayest do, and yet do nothing but babble. But if thou from a sense
of thy baseness canst groan out thy heart's desire before the Lord,
He will hear thee, and grant thy desire; for He can tell what is the
meaning of the groanings of the Spirit (Rom 8:26,27).
Object. O, but I am afraid to pray, for fear
my prayers should be counted as sin in the sight of the great God.
Answ. That is a good sign that thy prayers
are more than bare words, and have some prevalence at the Throne of
Grace through Christ Jesus, or else the devil would never seek to
labour to beat thee off from prayer by undervaluing thy prayers,
telling thee they are sin; for the best prayers he will call the
worst, and the worst he will call the best, or else how should he be
a liar?
Object. But I am afraid the day of grace is
past; and if it should be so, what should I do then?
Answ. Truly, with some men indeed it doth
fare thus, that the day of grace is at an end before their lives are
at end. Or thus, the day of grace is past before the day of death is
come, as Christ saith, "If thou hadst known, even thou, at least in
this thy day, the things which belong unto thy peace," that is, the
word of grace or reconciliation, "but now they are hid from thine
eyes" (Luke 19:41,42). But for the better satisfying of thee as
touching this thing, consider these following things-
First, Doth the Lord knock still at the door
of thy heart by His Word and Spirit? If so, then the day of grace is
not past with thy soul; for where He doth so knock, there He doth
also proffer and promise to come in and sup, that is, to communicate
of His things unto them, which he would not do was the day of grace
past with his soul (Rev 3:20).
Object. But how should I know whether Christ
do so knock at my heart as to be desirous to come in? That I may
know also, whether the day of grace be past with me or no?
Answ. Consider these things-1. Doth the Lord
make thee sensible of thy miserable state without an interest in
Jesus Christ, and that naturally thou hast no share in Him, no faith
in Him, no communion with Him, no delight in Him, or love in the
least to Him? If He hath, and is doing this, He hath, and is
knocking at thy heart. 2. Doth He, together with this, put into thy
heart an earnest desire after communion with Him, together with holy
resolutions not to be satisfied without real communion with Him. 3.
Doth He sometimes give thee some secret persuasions, though scarcely
discernible, that thou mayest attain, and get an interest in Him? 4.
Doth He now and then glance in some of the promises into thy heart,
causing them to leave some heavenly savour, though but for a very
short time, on thy spirit? 5. Dost thou at some time see some little
excellency in Christ? And doth all this stir up in thy heart some
breathing after Him? If so, then fear not, the day of grace is not
past with thy poor soul; for if the day of grace should be past with
such a soul as this, then that Scripture must be broken where Christ
saith, "Him that cometh to Me, I will in nowise," for nothing, by no
means, upon no terms whatsoever, "cast out. (John 6:37).
Object. But surely, if the day of grace was
not past with me, I should not be so long without an answer of God's
love to my soul; that therefore doth make me mistrust my state the
more is, that I wait and wait, and yet am not delivered.
Answ. 1. Hast thou waited on the Lord so long
as the Lord hath waited on thee? It may be the Lord hath waited on
thee these twenty, or thirty, yes, forty years or more, and thou
hath not waited on Him seven years. Cast this into thy mind,
therefore, when Satan tells thee that God doth not love thee,
because thou hast waited so long without an assurance, for it is his
temptation, for God did wait longer upon thee, and was fain to send
to thee by His ambassadors time after time; and, therefore, say
thou, I will wait to see what the Lord will say unto me; and the
rather, because He will speak peace, for He is the Lord thereof.
But, 2. Know that it is not thy being under trouble a long time that
will be an argument sufficiently to prove that thou art past hopes;
nay, contrariwise, for Jesus Christ did take our nature upon Him,
and also did undertake deliverance for those, and bring it in for
them who "were all their LIFETIME subject to bondage" (Heb 2:14,15).
Object. But alas! I am not able to wait, all
my strength is gone; I have waited so long, I can wait no longer.
Answ. It may be thou hast concluded on this
long ago, thinking thou shouldst not be able to hold out any longer;
no, not a year, a month, or a week; nay, it may be, not so long. It
may be in the morning thou hast thought thou shouldst not hold out
till night; and at night, till morning again; yet the Lord hath
supported thee, and kept thee in waiting upon Him many weeks and
years; therefore that is but the temptation of the devil to make
thee think so, that he might drive thee to despair of God's mercy,
and so to leave off following the ways of God, and to close in with
thy sins again. O therefore do not give way unto it, but believe
that thou shalt "see the goodness of the Lord in the land of the
living. Wait on the Lord, be of good courage, and He shall
strengthen thine heart; wait, I say, on the Lord" (Psa 28:13,14).
And that thou mayest so do, consider these things-(1.) If thou,
after thou hast waited thus long, shouldst now give over, and wait
no longer, thou wouldst lose all thy time and pains that thou hast
taken in the way of God hitherto, and wilt be like to a man that,
because he sought long for gold, and did not find it, therefore
turned back from seeking after it, though he was hard by it, and had
almost found it, and all because he was loath to look and seek a
little further. (2.) Thou wilt not only lose thy time, but also lose
thy own soul, for salvation is nowhere else but in Jesus Christ
(Acts 4:12). (3.) Thou wilt sin the highest sin that ever thou didst
sin before, in drawing finally back, insomuch that God may say, My
soul shall have no pleasure in him (Heb 10:38). But, 2. Consider,
thou sayest, all my strength is gone, and therefore how should I
wait? Why, at that time when thou feelest and findest thy strength
quite gone, even that is the time when the Lord will renew and give
thee fresh strength. "The youths shall faint and be weary, and the
young men shall utterly fall: but they that wait upon the Lord shall
renew their strength: they shall mount up with wings as eagles; they
shall run and not be weary; they shall walk, and not faint" (Isa
40:30,31).
Object. But though I do wait, yet if I be not
elected to eternal life, what good will all my waiting do me? "For
it is not of him that willeth, nor of him that runneth, but of God
that showeth mercy." Therefore, I say, if I should not be elected,
all is in vain.
Answ. 1. Why in the first place, to be sure
thy backsliding from God will not prove thy election, neither thy
growing weary of waiting upon God. But, 2. Thou art, it may be,
troubled to know whether thou art elected; and, sayest thou, If I
did but know that, that would encourage me in my waiting on God.
Answ. I believe thee; but mark, thou shalt not know thy election in
the first place, but in the second-that is to say, thou must first
get acquaintance with God in Christ, which doth come by thy giving
credit to His promises, and records which He hath given of Jesus
Christ's blood and righteousness, together with the rest of His
merits-that is, before thou canst know whether thou are elected,
thou must believe in Jesus Christ so really, that thy faith laying
hold of, and drinking and eating the flesh and blood of Christ, even
so that there shall be life begotten in thy soul by the same; life
from the condemnings of the Law; life from the guilt of sin; life
over the filth of the same; life also to walk with God in His Son
and ways; the life of love to God the Father, and Jesus Christ His
Son, saints and ways and that because they are holy, harmless, and
such that are altogether contrary to iniquity.
For these things must be in thy soul as a
forerunner of thy being made acquainted with the other; God hath
these two ways to show His children their election-(1.) By testimony
of the Spirit-that is, the soul being under trouble of conscience
and grieved for sin, the Spirit doth seal up the soul by its
comfortable testimony; persuading of the soul that God, for Christ's
sake, hath forgiven all those sins that lie so heavy on the
conscience, and that do so much perplex the soul, by showing it that
that Law, which doth utter such horrible curses against it, is by
Christ's blood satisfied and fulfilled (Eph 1:13,14). (2.) By
consequence-that is, the soul finding that God hath been good unto
it, in that He hath showed it its lost state and miserable
condition, and also that He hath given it some comfortable hope that
He will save it from the same; I say, the soul, from a right sight
thereof, doth, or may, draw this conclusion, that if God had not
been minded to have saved it, He would not have done for it such
things as these. But for the more sure dealing with thy soul, it is
not good to take any of these apart-that is, it is not good to take
the testimony of the Spirit, as thou supposest thou hast, apart from
the fruits thereof, so as to conclude the testimony thou hast
received to be a sufficient ground without the other; not that it is
not, if it be the testimony of the Spirit, but because the devil
doth also deceive souls by the workings of his spirit in them,
pretending that it is the Spirit of God. And again; thou shouldst
not satisfy thyself, though thou do find some seekings in thee after
that which is good, without the testimony of the other-that is to
say, of the Spirit-for it is the testimony of two that is to be
taken for the truth; therefore, say I, as thou shouldst be much in
praying for the Spirit to testify assurance to thee, so also thou
shouldst look to the end of it when thou thinkest thou hast it;
which is this, to show thee that it is alone for Christ's sake that
thy sins are forgiven thee, and also thereby a constraining of thee
to advance Him, both by words and works, in holiness and
righteousness all the days of thy life. From hence thou mayst boldly
conclude thy election-"Remembering without ceasing your work of
faith, and labour of love, and patience of hope in our Lord Jesus
Christ, in the sight of God and our Father. Knowing, brethren,"
saith the Apostle, "beloved, your election of God." But how? why by
this, "For our Gospel came not unto you in word only, but also in
power, and in the Holy Ghost, and in much assurance. And ye became
followers of us, and of the Lord, having received the word in much
affliction, with joy of the Holy Ghost: so that ye were ensamples to
all that believe in Macedonia and Achaia. And to wait for His Son
from Heaven, whom He raised from the dead, even Jesus, which" hath
"delivered us from the wrath to come" (1 Thess 3:4-6, 10).
Object. But alas, for my part, instead of
finding in me anything that is good, I find in me all manners of
wickedness, hard-heartedness, hypocricy, coldness of affection to
Christ, very great unbelief, together with everything that is base
and of an ill savour. What hope therefore can I have?
Answ. If thou wast not such an one, thou
hadst no need of mercy. If thou wast whole, thou hadst no need of
the physician. Dost thou therefore see thyself in such a sad
condition as this? Thou hast the more need to come to Christ, that
thou mayst be not only cleansed from these evils, but also that thou
mayst be delivered from that wrath they will bring upon thee, if
thou dost not get rid of them, to all eternity.
Quest. But how should I do? and what course
should I take to be delivered from this sad and troublesome
condition?
Answ. Dost thou see in thee all manner of
wickedness? The best way that I can direct a soul in such a case is,
to pitch a steadfast eye on Him that is full, and to look so
steadfastly upon Him by faith, that thereby thou mayst even draw
down of His fullness into thy heart; for that is the right way, and
the way that was typed out, before Christ came in the flesh, in the
time of Moses, when the Lord said unto him, "Make thee a fiery
serpent" of brass, which was a type of Christ "and set it upon a
pole; and it shall come to pass" that when a serpent hath bitten any
man, "when he looketh upon it, shall live" (Num 21:8). Even so now
in Gospel times, when any soul is bitten with the fiery
serpents-their sins-that then the next way to be healed is, for the
soul to look upon the Son of Man, who, as the serpent was, was
hanged on a pole, or tree, that whosoever shall indeed look on Him
by faith may be healed of all their distempers whatever (John
3:14,15).
As now to instance in some things. 1. Is thy
heart hard? Why, then, behold how full of bowels and compassion is
the heart of Christ towards thee, which may be seen in His coming
down from Heaven to spill His heart-blood for thee. 2. Is thy heart
slothful and idle? Then see how active the Lord Jesus is for thee in
that He did not only die for thee, but also in that He hath been
ever since His ascension into Heaven making intercession for thee
(Heb 7:25). 3. Dost thou see and find in thee iniquity and
unrighteousness? Then look up to Heaven, and see there a righteous
Person, even thy righteous Jesus Christ, now presenting thee in His
own perfection before the throne of His Father's glory (1 Cor 1:30).
4. Dost thou see that thou art very much void of sanctification?
Then look up, and thou shalt see that thy sanctification is in the
presence of God a complete sanctification, representing all the
saints as righteous, as sanctified ones in the presence of the great
God of Heaven. And so whatsoever thou wantest, be sure to strive to
pitch thy faith upon the Son of God, and behold Him steadfastly, and
thou shalt, by so doing, find a mighty change in thy soul. For when
we behold Him as in a glass, even the glory of the Lord, we are
changed, namely, by beholding, "from glory to glory, even as by the
Spirit of the Lord" (2 Cor 3:18). This is the true way to get both
comfort to thy soul, and also sanctification and right holiness into
thy soul.
Poor souls that are under the distemper of a
guilty conscience, and under the workings of much corruption, do not
go the nearest way to Heaven if they do not in the first place look
upon themselves as cursed sinners by Law; and yet at that time they
are blessed, for ever blessed saints by the merits of Jesus Christ.
"O wretched man that I am," saith Paul; and yet, O blessed man that
I am, through my Lord Jesus Christ; for that is the scope of the
Scripture (Rom 7:24,25).
Object. But, alas, I am blind, and cannot
see; what shall I do now?
Answ. Why, truly, thou must go to Him that
can make the eyes that are blind to see, even to our Lord Jesus, by
prayer, saying, as the poor blind man did, "Lord, that I might
receive my sight"; and so continue begging Him, till thou do receive
sight, even a sight of Jesus Christ, His death, blood, resurrection,
ascension, intercession, and that for thee, even for thee. And the
rather, because, 1. He hath invited thee to come and buy such
eye-salve of Him that may make thee see (Rev 3:18). 2. Because thou
shalt never have any true comfort till thou dost thus come to see
and behold the Lamb of God that hath taken away thy sins (John
1:29). 3. Because that thereby thou wilt be able through grace, to
step over and turn aside from the several stumbling-blocks that
Satan, together with his instruments, hath laid in our way, which
otherwise thou wilt not be able to shun, but will certainly fall
when others stand, and grope and stumble when others go upright, to
the great prejudice of thy poor soul.
Object. But, alas, I have nothing to carry
with me; how then should I go?
Answ. Hast thou no sins? If thou hast, carry
them, and exchange them for His righteousness; because He hath said,
"Cast thy burden upon the Lord, and He shall sustain thee" (Psa
54:22); and again, because He hath said, though thou be heavy laden,
yet if thou do but come to Him, He will give thee rest (Matt 11:28).
Object. But, you will say, Satan telleth me
that I am so cold in prayers, so weak in believing, so great a
sinner, that I do go so slothfully on in the way of God, that I am
so apt to slip at every temptation, and to be entangled therewith,
together with other things, so that I shall never be able to attain
those blessed things that are held forth to sinners by Jesus Christ;
and therefore my trouble is much upon this account also, and many
times I fear that will come upon me which Satan suggesteth to
me-that is, I shall miss of eternal life.
Answ. 1. As to the latter part of the
objection, that thou shalt never attain to everlasting life, that is
obtained for thee already, without thy doing, either thy praying,
striving, or wrestling against sin. If we speak properly, it is
Christ that hath in His own body abolished death on the Cross, and
brought light, life, and glory to us through this His thus doing.
But this is the thing that thou aimest at, that thou shalt never
have a share in this life already obtained for so many as do come by
faith to Jesus Christ; and all because thou art so slothful, so
cold, so weak, so great a sinner, so subject to slip and commit
infirmities. 2. I answer, Didst thou never learn for to outshoot the
devil in his own bow, and to cut off his head with his own sword, as
David served Goliath, who was a type of him.
Quest. O how should a poor soul do this? This
is rare, indeed.
Answ. Why, truly thus-Doth Satan tell thee
thou prayest but faintly, and with very cold devotion? Answer him
thus, and say, I am glad you told me, for this will make me trust
the more to Christ's prayers, and the less to my own; also I will
endeavour henceforth to groan, to sigh, and to be so fervent in my
crying at the Throne of Grace, that I will, if I can, make the
heavens rattle again with the mighty groans thereof. And whereas
thou sayest that I am so weak in believing, I am glad you mind me of
it; I hope it will henceforward stir me up to cry the more heartily
to God for strong faith, and make me the more restless till I have
it. And seeing thou tellest me that I run so softly, and that I
shall go near to miss of glory, this also shall be, through grace,
to my advantage, and cause me to press the more earnestly towards
the mark for the prize of the high calling of God in Christ Jesus.
And seeing thou dost tell me that my sins are wondrous great, hereby
thou bringest the remembrance of the unsupportable vengeance of God
into my mind, if I die out of Jesus Christ, and also the necessity
of the blood, death, and merits of Christ to help me; I hope it will
make me fly the faster, and press the harder after an interest in
Him; and the rather, because, as thou tellest me, my state will be
unspeakably miserable without Him. And so all along, if he tell thee
of thy deadness, dullness, coldness, or unbelief, or the greatness
of thy sins, answer him, and say, I am glad you told me, I hope it
will be a means to make me run faster, seek earnestlier, and to be
the more restless after Jesus Christ. If thou didst but get this art
as to outrun him in his own shoes, as I may say, and to make his own
darts to pierce himself, then thou mightst also say, how doth
Satan's temptations, as well as all other things, work together for
my good, for my advantage (Rom 8:28).
Object. But I do find many weaknesses in
every duty that I do perform, as when I pray, when I read, when I
hear, or any other duty, that it maketh me out of conceit with
myself, it maketh me think that my duties are nothing worth.
Answ. I answer, it may be it is thy mercy
that thou art sensible of infirmities in thy best things thou doest;
ay, a greater mercy than thou art aware of.
Quest. Can it me a mercy for me to be
troubled with my corruptions? Can it be a privilege for me to be
annoyed with my infirmities, and to have my best duties infected
with it? How can it possibly be?
Answ. Verily, thy sins appearing in thy best
duties, do work for thy advantage these ways-1. In that thou findest
ground enough thereby to make thee humble; and when thou hast done
all, yet to count thyself but an unprofitable servant. And, 2. Thou
by this means art taken off from leaning on anything below a naked
Jesus for eternal life. It is like, if thou wast not sensible of
many by-thoughts and wickednesses in thy best performances, thou
wouldst go near to be some proud, abominable hypocrite, or a silly,
proud dissembling wretch at the best, such an one as would send thy
soul to the devil in a bundle of thy own righteousness. But now,
thou, through grace, seest that in all and everything thou doest
there is sin enough in it to condemn thee. This, in the first place,
makes thee have a care of trusting in thy own doings; and, secondly,
showeth thee that there is nothing in thyself which will do thee any
good by working in thee, as to the meritorious cause of thy
salvation. No; but thou must have a share in the birth of Jesus, in
the death of Jesus, in the blood, resurrection, ascension, and
intercession of a crucified Jesus. And how sayest thou? Doth not thy
finding of this in thee cause thee to fly from a depending on thy
own doings? And doth it not also make thee more earnestly to groan
after the Lord Jesus? Yea, and let me tell thee also, it will be a
cause to make thee admire the freeness and tender heartedness of
Christ to thee, when He shall lift up the light of His countenance
upon thee, because He hath regarded such an one as thou, sinful
thou; and therefore, in this sense, it will be mercy to the saints
that they do find the relics of sin still struggling in their
hearts. But this is not simply the nature of sin, but the mercy and
wisdom of God, who causeth all things to work together for the good
of those that love and fear God (Rom 8). And, therefore, whatever
thou findest in thy soul, though it be sin of never so black a
soul-scarring nature, let it move thee to run the faster to the Lord
Jesus Christ, and thou shalt not be ashamed-that is, of thy running
to Him.
But when thou dost apprehend that thou art
defiled, and also thy best duties annoyed with many weaknesses, let
that Scripture come into thy thoughts which saith, "Of Him are ye in
Christ Jesus, who of God is made unto us wisdom, and righteousness,
and sanctification, and redemption"; and if thou shalt understand
that, what thou canst not find in thyself thou shalt find in Christ.
Art thou a fool in thyself? then Christ is made of God thy wisdom.
Art thou unrighteous in thyself? Christ is made of God thy
righteousness. Dost thou find that there is but very little
sanctifying grace in thy soul? still here is Christ made thy
sanctification; and all this in His own Person without thee, without
thy wisdom, without thy righteousness, without thy sanctification,
without in His own Person in thy Father's presence, appearing there
perfect wisdom, righteousness, and sanctification in His own Person;
I say, as a public Person for thee; so that thou mayest believe, and
say to thy soul, My soul, though dost find innumerable infirmities
in thyself, and in thy actions, yet look upon thy Jesus, the Man
Jesus; He is wisdom, and that for thee, to govern thee, to take care
for thee, and to order all things for the best for thee. He is also
thy righteousness now at God's right hand, always shining before the
eyes of His glory; so that there it is unmoveable, though thou art
in never such a sad condition, yet thy righteousness, which is the
Son of God, God-man, shines as bright as ever, and is as much
accepted of God as ever. O this sometimes hath been life to me; and
so, whatever thou, O my soul, findest wanting in thyself, through
faith thou shalt see all laid up for thee in Jesus Christ, whether
it be wisdom, righteousness, sanctification, or redemption. Nay, not
only so, but, as I said before, He is all these in His own Person
without thee in the presence of His Father for thee.
Object. But now, if any should say in their
hearts, O, but I am one of the old-covenant men, I doubt-that is, I
doubt I am not within this glorious Covenant of Grace. And how if I
should not?
Answ. Well, thou fearest that thou are one of
the old covenant, a son of the bond-woman. [1.] In the first place,
know that thou wast one of them by nature, for all by nature are
under that covenant; but set the case that thou art to this day
under that, yet let me tell thee, in the first place, there are
hopes for thee; for there is a gap open, a way made for souls to
come from under the Covenant of Works, by Christ, "for He hath
broken down the middle wall of partition between us" and you (Eph
2:14). And therefore, if thou wouldst be saved, thou mayest come to
Christ; if thou wantest a righteousness, as I said before, there is
one in Christ; if thou wouldst be washed, thou mayest come to
Christ; and if thou wouldst be justified, there is justification
enough in the Lord Jesus Christ. That is the first. [2.] And thou
canst not be so willing to come to Christ as He is willing thou
shouldst come to Him. Witness His coming down from Heaven, His
humiliation, His spilling of His blood from both His cheeks, by
sweat under the burden of sin (Luke 22:44) and His shedding of it by
the spear when He hanged on the Cross. It appears also by His
promises, by His invitations, by His sending forth His messengers to
preach the same to poor sinners, and threateneth damnation upon this
very account, namely, the neglect of Him; and declares that all the
thousands and ten thousands of sins in the world should not be able
to damn those that believed in Him; that He would pardon all,
forgive and pass by all, if they would but come unto Him; moreover,
promiseth to cast out none, no, not the poorest, vilest,
contemptiblest creature in the whole world. "Come unto Me all,"
every one, though you be never so many, so vile, though your load be
never so heavy and intolerable, though you deserve no help, not the
least help, no mercy, not the least compassion, yet "cast your
burden upon Me, and you shall find rest for your souls." Come unto
Me and I will heal you, love you, teach you, and tell you the way to
the Kingdom of Heaven. Come unto Me, and I will succour you, help
you, and keep you from all devils and their temptations, from the
Law and its curses, and from being for ever overcome with any evil
whatever. Come unto Me for what you need, and tell Me what you would
have, or what you would have Me do for you, and all My strength,
love, wisdom, and interest that I have with My Father shall be laid
out for you. Come unto Me, your sweet Jesus, your loving and
tender-hearted Jesus, your everlasting and sin-pardoning Jesus. Come
unto Me ,and I will wash you, and put My righteousness upon you,
pray to the Father for you, and send My Spirit into you, that you
might be saved. Therefore,
Consider, besides this, what a privilege thou
shalt have at the Day of Judgment above thousands, if thou do in
deed and in truth close in with this Jesus and accept of Him; for
thou shalt not only have a privilege in this life, but in the life
everlasting, even at the time of Christ's second coming from Heaven;
for then, when there shall be the whole world gathered together, and
all the good angels, bad angels, saints, and reprobates, when all
thy friends and kindred, with thy neighbours on the right hand and
on the left shall be with thee, beholding of the wonderful glory and
majesty of the Son of God; then shall the Son of Glory, even Jesus,
in the very view and sight of them all, smile and look kindly upon
thee; when a smile or a kind look from Christ shall be worth more
than ten thousand worlds, then thou shalt have it. You know it is
counted an honour for a poor man to be favourably looked upon by a
judge, or a king, in the sight of lords, earls, dukes, and princes;
why, thus it will be with thee in the sight of all the princely
saints, angels, and devils, in the sight of all the great nobles in
the world; then, even thou that closest in with Christ, be thou rich
or poor, be thou bond or free, wise or foolish, if thou close in
with Him, He will say unto thee, "Well done, good and faithful
servant," even in the midst of the whole world; they that love thee
shall see it, and they that hate thee shall all to their shame
behold it; for if thou fear Him here in secret, He will make it
manifest even at that day upon the house-tops.
Secondly, Not only thus, but thou shalt also
be lovingly received and tenderly embraced of Him at that day, when
Christ hath thousands of gallant saints, as old Abraham, Isaac,
Jacob, David, Isaiah, Jeremiah, together with all the Prophets, and
Apostles, and martyrs, attending on Him; together with many
thousands of glittering angels ministering before Him; besides, when
the ungodly shall appear there with their pale faces, with their
guilty consciences, and trembling souls, that would then give
thousands and ten thousands of worlds, if they had so many, if they
could enjoy but one loving look from Christ. I say, then, then shalt
thou have the hand of Christ, reached to thee kindly to receive
thee, saying, Come, thou blessed, step up hither; thou was willing
to leave all for Me, and now will I give all to thee; here is a
throne, a crown, a kingdom, take them; thou wast not ashamed of Me
when thou wast in the world among my enemies, and now will not I be
ashamed of thee before thine enemies, but will, in the view of all
these devils and damned reprobates promote thee to honour and
dignity. "Come, ye blessed of My Father, inherit the kingdom
prepared for you from the foundation of the world." Thou shalt see
that those who have served Me in truth shall lose nothing by the
means. No; but ye shall be as pillars in My temple, and inheritors
of My glory, and shall have place to walk in among My saints and
angels (Zech 3:7). O! who would not be in this condition? who would
not be in this glory? It will be such a soul-ravishing glory, that I
am ready to think the whole reprobate world will be ready to run
mad, to think that they should miss of it (Deu 28:34). Then will the
vilest drunkard, swearer, liar, and unclean person willingly cry,
"Lord, Lord, open to us," yet be denied of entrance; and thou in the
meantime embraced, entertained, made welcome, have a fair mitre set
upon thy head, and clothed with immortal glory (Zech 3:5). O,
therefore, let all this move thee, and be of weight upon thy soul to
close in with Jesus, this tender-hearted Jesus. And if yet, for all
what I have said, thy sins do still stick with thee, and thou
findest thy hellish heart loath to let them go, think with thyself
in this manner-Shall I have my sins and lose my soul? Will they do
me any good when Christ comes? Would not Heaven be better to me than
my sins? and the company of God, Christ, saints, and angels, be
better than the company of Cain, Judas, Balaam, with the devils in
the furnace of fire? Canst thou now that readest or hearest these
lines turn thy back, and go on in your sins? Canst thou set so light
of Heaven, of God, of Christ, and the salvation of thy poor, yet
precious soul? Canst thou hear of Christ, His bloody sweat and
death, and not be taken with it, and not be grieved for it, and also
converted by it? If so, I might lay thee down several considerations
to stir thee up to mend thy pace towards Heaven; but I shall not;
there is enough written already to leave thy soul without excuse and
to bring thee down with a vengeance into Hell-fire, devouring fire,
the Lake of Fire, eternal everlasting fire; O to make thee swim and
roll up and down in the flames of the furnace of fire!